CHURCH/HOUSE OF GOD
V O L U M E I
JULY 15, 1970
- Do not defame My Son's Sanctuary! Visit My Son often for He
will protect you against the darkness..........Do not be ashamed
of My Son's Crown. Why do you hide His Cross? Darkness covers
My Church. My Son is hurt. Turn to My Son.(vol I page 11)
AUGUST 14, 1970
- Joseph has been forgotten. Love him and pray to Joseph. He will
guide you on the path. Yes, the enemy is within the Holy Church.
Satan will find many to create heresy with loss of the true
Faith. Resist the knife that seeks to cut Holy Church asunder.
(vol I page 13)
AUGUST 21, 1970
- Stand beside My Vicar. There will be many martyrs in the conflagration.
Do not abandon the Holy Father for he is your Father on earth.
Do not abandon My Son's gift to you in Holy Church, for it is
Our home on earth, your Heavenly habitat, sheltering you from
the Dark Knights (satan's henchmen), wandering about to drag you
to the bottomless pit! Find shelter in Jesus' arms. Remain close
to Him. (vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1970
- Do not leave Holy Church. Do not fall away from the Church for
the sins of man. Only My Rosary holds back the darkness. ............Your
way of life in your Country has been planned by Satan for the
destruction of souls, with the destruction of the Holy Church
of My Son and the Divinity of My Son. The gates of hell will not
prevail against My Son's Church! (vol I page 14)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970
- Though the forces of evil have entered the Holy Church, they
will not destroy the House of My Son. Do not abandon My Son because
of the present confusion, for We will rescue you from the darkness!.............Who
created the pagan rituals that I see before Me, in the Holy Places
of Prayer? For well I remember how they too, danced about My Son's
Cross, clapped their hands to the beat of each drop of His Blood!
Why must you make My Son continue His anguish? See the torn Flesh,
the Heart laid bare! Won't you stand beneath the Cross with Me,
now? (vol I page 17)
Visit My Son often in the Tabernacles
of the world. Do not be turned away by the present strife, for
always remember. Where Jesus is, there is your Church...........Do
not My dedicated, take away the pictures and statues for then
the children will cast their eyes on things of the world. We will
be just a memory, a legend to them. Blessed be the dear souls
who placed the child in My arms...... (vol I page 18)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - This man of perdition, this man out of hell, will spread his darkness through Holy Church! Hold the Truth always in your heart! Pray for your priests, your hierarchy, for the Faith has grown weak! They will be victimized by the evil one who is now loose in your Land. He will only possess a soul that has grown weak! Strengthen your souls by staying with My Son, near the Tabernacles of the world. Accept the gift of My Son often, His Physical Body, present in your Eucharist, given to you only by consecrated hands blessed by My Son and Ordained to do His Work and represent Him! Turn you face from those who wish to profane the Body of My Son. The Light of the Holy Spirit will guide you in this respect! The indignities to My
Son, the Eternal Father and all Heaven
are increasing with the increased destruction of the man of sin!
His goal is the possession of all spirits destined for My Son's
Kingdom. (vol I page 23)
Remember January 21, 1971! This was
the day My children, when the man of perdition came to your city
and entered your Holy Church. Now he moves about and will spread
destruction throughout your Land before he proceeds on to Egypt.
Remember this date, My children, for it was a sad day for mankind.
For what could be sadder than the entrance of the anti-Christ
into your Land. (vol I page 24)
MARCH 24, 1971
- I would like you to call on Michael often!! He is the guardian
of My House!... I must bring forth the sad truth, My children,
that a House in darkness will wear a band of death about it! (vol
I page 25)
APRIL 3, 1971
- I must now caution you in the days ahead, you must not be led
or misled by the events that the evil one will bring upon you
in his attempt to destroy My Son's House (Church). You must help
your priests. It is not constructive to speak out in anger against
My Son's House. If you have anything to say that you feel is being
done wrong, go to the ones concerned, your priests, your bishops.
Do not spread words among the disbelievers, those waiting to take
anything that can be thrown back to destroy My Son's House. You
must realize now that the trouble within My Son's House has been
caused by defiled man of perdition, the anti-Christ, who has been
loosed among you in this final battle. If you would put aside
your worldly pleasures, your pampering of your body, your eyes
would no longer be blinded. You could see the existence of the
evil one in your country; but no! You have chosen to cast Us aside
for temporary pleasures. Those who have loved Us enough to care;
there is nothing to fear, for We will extend Our Mercy far and
wide. (vol I page 26)
MAY 19, 1971
- Yes, they will be needed to safeguard those who represent Me
in My House (Church) for the man of perdition (anti-Christ) will
enter higher places to render discord among those who rule My
House on earth. Have pity for those (clergy) who will fall into
his trap. Only prayer and mortification of the senses can retrieve
one of these souls. No one will be free from the assaults to
the Church by the one called anti-Christ unless you keep Me with
you (Eucharist), not as an occasional visit but as a daily act
of love. Satan has placed his disciples in your schools, your
government, you ways of entertainment, you means of communication,
all have been infiltrated! You can readily see My children, how
far he has progressed to destroy. We are gathering Our armies
from Heaven, yes, We are watching and will join in the eventual
combat for My Mother's Heart will heal when We triumphantly remove
the evil one from among you!! (vol I page 27)
I love you all, My children, My Son
loves you, do not force Our hand upon you! Yes, We see those whom
satan has placed within Our House. You know who you are! You went
on the wide road. Throughout your country We see pagan practice!
Who led them into such vile practices? There is a well laid plan
to destroy My Son's House, many have sold their souls to get to
the head! Eternal damnation is their destination! ..............Why
have they chased Michael from My Son's houses? He was their guardian!
They must place Michael back in My Son's house! Yes, they have
shut doors and minds against him! But they cannot shut him out
of the hearts of those destined for Our Kingdom. What kind of
noises do We hear in My Son's house? Demons on the prance! Did
they not dance around My Son's cross as He hung there on the
wood?
We can see and hear everything! Nothing
is hidden from Us. Nothing can be done in secret. The Eternal
Father is the Lord High God in Heaven and your Creator. As such
He can destroy you! I have told you before that everything has
been planned for your destruction and the evil is well rooted
in your country now, your country is in dire danger because it
has the facilities to promote more evil throughout the world.
Therefore the punishment will be far greater! The man of sin is
in your country, and the punishment will be far greater for the
man of sin is in My Son's House! You will glorify My Son in your
house, (Jesus), or you will not stand as a house! You will not
glorify man before God! You will not exchange the heart of God
for gold or silver. You will stand with the Holy Father and render
him no more sorrow. You who have been his disobedient children,
stop plunging the knife into his heart! He is Our Vicar. He is
your Father on earth, why do you disobey him? (vol I page 28)
JUNE 15, 1971
- Unless you pray for the souls that are falling in My Son's house
(church) you too, will be affected by the disaster that lies ahead
of you! Yes, My words were given in the same vein many years ago,
and they too, were not heeded. Did you act upon them? No! You
hid them from the world! What will you do now? Yes,, I warned
you many years ago that satan would enter My Son's House! (church)
but you did not listen. Now he is there! Have pity for all men
of sin! Have pity for those who represent My Son and have fallen
into the web of deceit of satan! They will all be answerable to
Us, more so, for they were given the graces to fight this!
What is this darkness? You ask Me,
My child. The darkness is a blindness of heart! Yes, you can be
conditioned to be confused and no longer recognize the truth.
You have a free will to go your own way, should you fall, you
must fall alone! We will not let you take innocent souls with
you. You are treading on My Son's House and making it a place
of self gratification for arrogant man who follows after his own
lusts! Your love of money has been your downfall. Yes, you are
misguided. There will be much suffering for those who stand to
defend My Son's House! This can never be destroyed for the foundation
is solid. The foundation is My Son! But many now dishonor Him
in His House. Blind man of self gratification, blind man who pursues
after his own heart, his lusts! You call the hand of the Father
down heavily upon you! This condition did not arrive over night,
or this year, or 2 years ago. Yes, it has been well planned! ....delusions!..........Oh,
mournful, heresy! Whatever will We do with you? Satan is now banding
his disciples within My House, My Heart is bleeding. We watch
this, My Mother's Heart is torn! (vol I page 29)
JULY 1, 1971
- You will not conduct and perform acts of mockery in My House!
(church) Oh My poor blind children, you do not see what is already
upon you! You do not recognize the signs, you choose to blind
yourself to the truth! (vol I page 30)
JULY 25, 1971
- Your country is calling upon itself a greater danger for when
they sent themselves against My Son and seek to lock Him out of
their Houses and to lock Him out of their country, We have no
recourse but to chastise you as We would disobedient children.
All about you, you see the disobedience of children. In your schools,
your government, you churches, where is the respect, the honor
to your God. (vol I page 31)
AUGUST 15, 1971
- A house in darkness wears a band of death about it! You will
not mislead the children any longer! (vol I page 33)
AUGUST 15, 1971
- Your country has cast Us aside, yes, they are a few who stayed
with Us, satan has done his work of folly well! Yes, satan has
gone into the highest positions in My House (Church), but, he
will not triumph in the final count. The victory will be with
Us, for he (satan) will only proceed as My Father deems. The Chastisement
you receive will be a cleansing! It will gather souls for the
Kingdom but, many at the time, will still not recognize the truth.
(vol I page 33)
AUGUST 21, 1971
- Satan has placed his disciples in your schools. Satan has placed
disciples in My Son's House. You will have to seek them out. You
will need My Son to guide you. You will not recover these souls
without prayers or sacrifice, violence will gain you nothing,
for you will destroy your own souls! (vol I page 33)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1971
- Beware, My children, of those about you who are enemies of light
and life. You must flee from them. I repeat: You must flee from
false pastors, not to give disrespect to My Son's House (Church)
but to prevent the souls of your children being contaminated by
the evil. He (anti-Christ) is working hard in My Son's House (Church).
But this you will remember in the days ahead, they will not be
triumphant. All evil is never triumphant. We will bring the sword
and destroy these evil one's in My Son's House! They have darkened
the souls of My children and I seek to bring them back to Me.
They who once were the light and now have walked into the darkness.
I give you the knowledge, My children. (vol I page 35)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971
- My child, you will make My message known to the world. We implore
all true hearts to spread My message. My words will be few, the
darkness is deeper. I have just come through the shadows. I have
with Me, My child, three guardian (angels) of My Son's House (Church).
He (anti-Christ) the evil one will not destroy My Son's House.
Yes, there will be many martyrs in the days ahead. All parents
must rescue their children from the evils of error! We advocate
the instructions of your children in the Faith. We do not want
their teachers to be the adversary's helpers, the followers of
the agents of hell who do not recognize the truth. You must know
this truth of the evil that is about you, and must fight this
evil with prayer and sacrifice of your worldly desires! Or you
will not escape the Chastisement planned by the Father! Unless
you heed My words and guide My Church, unless you erase the evidence
of error in My Son's House, you will be destroyed! Repeat: A house
in darkness wears a band of death about it. A Church in darkness
wears a band of death about it. ...............Weep not for Me,
My child, but cry for your children. But mothers cry for your
children for they are the true victims! I have begged you to remove
the corruption in your country and now covers like the darkness
of the abyss your government, your schools and My Son's House.
But you were apathetic to My warnings. What will you do now?
(vol I page 36)
OCTOBER 2, 1971
- My child, man hath aligned himself with Our adversary, satan.
Man has taken up arms against Us! Unless the forces of anti-Christ
be removed from My Son's House there will be great suffering!
Those who remain true to My Son's House (Church) will be asked
to suffer much! Satan has now loosed many agents among you. They
have a strong army. The ultimate victory will be Ours! We have
given you your armor. Your defense will be found there. You have
your armor. Now you will keep a constant vigil of prayer going
in your country. It must be one life of atonement, sacrifice,
and prayer! The numbers left after the conflagration will be counted
in the few. The choice will be given to every individual which
road he will travel. Yes, there are many in My Son's House who
have fallen. Even those can be saved with your prayers. The ones
whom your prayers do not recover, they will become members of
satan's crew, for already he (satan) has aligned them against
those who will defend My Son's House! We have asked your Holy
Father for a great sacrifice. You, in your resort to prayer will
hold a balance of the sacrifice.
Call on Michael more often. He will
enter My House without even being acknowledged within My House!
Anti-Christ covers the earth now. Those who choose him surround
their lives with materialism's and this new creation of humanism
will find they have only been prey of satan, and when they have
rejected the light that We have given them they will have willfully
cast Us aside! They have done so willfully! All past messages
must be dispersed at this time for the "future" is now
here! I give you, Veronica, peace of spirit from the heart of
the Father. Continue to gather the souls. Make is known that the
Faith in My Mass, in My House, shall not be discarded. You will
NOT lose faith in My Mass. I am present in physical and spirit
in My House and in My Mass and anti-Christ shall not destroy this
truth! .........Agents of satan are everywhere. You will learn
to recognize the face of evil. Pray for the Light! (vol I page
37)
OCTOBER 7, 1971
- Those who remain true to My Son will be given the light in the
dark days. We will not abandon any to Lucifer for all who call
for your help and assistance will receive the graces to carry
them through. You will wear your Rosary and remain close to My
Son's tabernacles throughout the world. Spread not your time questioning
the ethics or the reasoning of mere man who used My Son's House,
but retire within the spirit and come to My Son in His House looking
at Him through the spirit not through worldly eyes. He will always
be there in His House. Our lawfully ordained priests will always
have the power to bring My Son in physical body to you. The trappings
as such, placed on the procedure by man are of nothing, for you
will live in the spirit concerned not with aspects of worldliness
and decoration now, for in truth the destruction and removals
in My Son's House are but symptoms, indications of the major illness
in My Son's House, caused by the entrance of the evil one who
you know as anti-Christ, the adversary of satan and darkness.
(vol I page 38)
DECEMBER 7, 1971
- All who deny My Son and have developed pride in worldly interests,
blinding them to the words of My prophets choosing to rewrite
to distort the written and spoken word of Our prophets, to satisfy
their own purpose and self gratification, striving after their
own hearts, their own work of folly. Oh, arrogant man! Why do
you take your brothers and sisters further from Us? We view the
vilest of desecration's being perpetrated in My Son's House! ..........Prayer,
sacrifice, atonement! Pray for the light; pray for all clergy.
My Heart is filled with tears at the numbers fast going into darkness.
Will they not recognize the evil that has entered upon My Son's
House? (church) Our clergy must read Our Bible. They no longer
find the Revelations in Our Book of Light and Life. Remember,
My children, the day will come, after much suffering, when My
Son will return to set all right again. Persevere against the
forces of evil that now enshrouds your earth. Be nourished by
the presence of My Son among you (Eucharist). Hold back the darkness!
(vol I page 40)
DECEMBER 24, 1971
- An evil power enshrouds your world now, a power strengthened
by the demons now loosed from the abyss. We see the earth covered
in darkness. The victims of your decadent society are your children,
the innocent victims of their elders. Have you not recognized
the advent of anti-Christ into your land! Into your government,
your schools, your news medias, and yes, now into My Son's House
(Church)! Woe to evil man who has chosen to sell his soul to Lucifer
for worldly gain of such temporary existence! There is great deception
in My Son's House. Unless My message is heeded I will no longer
be able to hold back His hand that will fall heavy upon you! Oh,
My children, do not deafen your ears to My pleas now! Do not turn
away from Me now! Oh, My children, see My heart so torn with sorrow,
this Child I gave to you, with love; this Child you destroyed
on earth before My eyes, this Child now grown whose Heart still
bleeds with hurt, with yearning for your understanding. (vol I
page 40)
A merciful God, Who asks for repentance,
Who asks you to mend your ways now for your future is limited.
Recognize the signs of the times. Your country, your world, your
church, are being destroyed from within! The gates of hell shall
not prevail against My Son's Church, but Oh, the souls that are
being lost to Us now. The advance of the darkness will all be
on your decision! Those of grace must carry the Light! (vol I
page 40,41)
DECEMBER 31, 1971
- All humans are subject to temptation, error and the decision
to accept the Light or the darkness, on free will. The choice
will be given to all to accept or reject My Son, before the arrival
of the cataclysm. The word will go throughout the world. You will
not accept the rewritings of false prophets as satan has entered
the highest ranks of My Son's House (Church). Pray for all priests.
Pray for all who have in their power the measure of the balance
for the destruction of innocent souls. My Son cries in anguish
at the many abuses to His Sacred Being. Many souls are being led
to the road of damnation by false teachers. Woe to evil man who
by his avarice and evil example has chosen to sell his soul to
Lucifer.................Confusion, confusion! All about Us We
see confusion and the conditioning of errors. Family prayer must
be instituted in the home. Without prayer you will walk the road
of error! Many prayers of reparation are needed for Our Vicar.
There is, My child, a plan to eliminate him. It is being developed
to remove him from Our House for one who is known as anti-Christ,
to reign, yes, this black leader is not black of color, but of
heart. He will bring much evil into My Son's House. (vol I page
41)
And remember, a House in darkness
wears a band of death about it. (Our Lady said that Holy Church
will pass through a heavy trial, but Jesus will turn all evil
to good.) (vol I page 42)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972
- The Church of the Living God vs. the church of man. Condemn
not My House, My children, I gave it to you with peace and purity.
It is man, in influence of satan, using fallen leaders, who seek
to defy and defile Me and My House! Those who remain in the Light
will recognize this truth. These loosed demons (out of hell) can
be driven away by the guardians, the angels, assigned to My House
to defend My House! Yes, even those who have fallen from grace
will be rescued if they repent of their ways now and turn back
to Us! Soon there will be a sword placed upon the world. (vol
I page 43)
This hallowed place (Shrine) will
be an oasis in a barren land. In time you will understand. There
will be many tears before the gathering of My Son's House (Church).
Keep hope and light of heart, for that day will come when all
will be returned as beauty, of peace, as the Father has Created
it to be. Persevere to that day and you will be counted among
the blessed. (vol I page 43,44)
MARCH 24, 1972
- St. Michael: Hasten now! Listen to me! You make an irreverence
of Our House (Church)! I am Michael. Guardian of the Faith, Guardian
of the House, Guardian of the souls within the House. I speak
to you now; you will listen, or meet the fate of an unrepentant
generation! You have descended the steps backward and desecrated
the Holy Temple! As such you call down upon yourself a just punishment!
.................St. Gabriel: The war is on now! It has entered
within the Holy Temple of God! You have set up a cross to worship,
but you have built a false image; it is not of God, but of man!
For this the sword will be heavy upon you!........(Our Lady) My
children, the evil has accelerated! I see the deep darkness in
My Son's House (Church) Many Rosaries, many prayers are needed
for Our Vicar. Unless you make sacrifices of the senses for your
Vicar, he will be removed from among you! It will be a great sacrifice
for the world, for you do not know what awaits you on the Seat
of Peter! Soon there will be a violent change, My child, on your
earth. (vol I page 44)
All cardinals and bishops are being
held accountable for defilement of My Son. Those who have led
many astray will now turn back and return to the Light of Truth.
You have traded within My Son's House, man has traded within My
Son's House; bargained His Body for gain and power, while souls
are numberless that are being starved, and thirst for the pure
Waters (people are like flowers; souls are flowers in God's Garden
on earth, who are now in black soil; nourishing waters poisoned,
so the fair lilies have wilted and many die) (St. Theresa, 1969,
to Veronica: "Their flowers faces can no longer face up to
the light.) ...................The pictures you have been given
(miraculous photos) were given because the faith has grown very
weak. Man needs now physical proof. We are desperate for your
acceptance of Our gifts to save each and every soul! We do not
want the final count to be in the few! There will be the gathering
of the souls when My Son sets His House to right! (vol I page
45)
MARCH 25, 1972
- You will make it known to all that the road ahead, My child,
will now be rocky and is marked with thorns. Pray, sacrifice,
atone now, for your Vicar! Among you and in My Son's House are
those who are paving their road to Hell! Our hearts are grieved
for they not only fall, but they take others with them. Innocent
souls that are led by them into darkness! Woe to evil man who
turns his back upon his God. When the hand falls upon him he will
not rise! ...........My child, I am not here to fill you with
fright; all will be good for those of well spirit. I am not here
to rescue the good, but to awaken those who have turned their
backs and are following Lucifer! Your world is in darkness! Our
House is in darkness! I roam, My children, throughout the world
carrying the Light; My steps grow heavy. The Light is flickering.
Won't you light your candle with Me and help Us in this war of
the spirits? (vol I page 45)
There will be trials ahead, trials
in My Son's House, and in your country. All who do not recognize
My Son as the Savior shall not be given keys to the Kingdom. My
Son, in the Father has given you all an inborn conscience, and
guardians that you would not fall prey to the agents of satan
or his planned elements. Should you throw away Our graces, you
will become blind, in darkness, until you will no longer recognize
the truth! (vol I page 46)
APRIL 1, 1972
- Continue your prayers and sacrifices for your Vicar. The enemy
has a well-founded plan to remove him from the seat of Peter.
The enemy is waiting, who will recrucify My Son! Only you can
help to hold back the darkness that is now smothering truth within
My Son's House (Church). Our Church will rise triumphant in the
final count, but how many souls must fall to satan before that
time? How many who have been given the power in My Son's House
are using this power to destroy souls. They have aligned themselves
with satan! ..........All who have sold their souls to satan will
be claimed by satan. All who have remained true to Us and Our
Church will stand forth and join My Son in the glorious day when
all will be one!...............You must decide your path, hell
or Heaven! There is no recourse, My children. You have all been
given an inborn conscience. You must reject the plan of satan
and not succumb to his lures! The world about you has become the
playground of satan and his agents. Your world is in darkness.
Our Church is in darkness; but We still carry the light. All who
follow Me, My children, will be led out of the darkness. The punishment
would be upon you this day but for the numbers of souls that satan
would capture now. (vol I page 49)
APRIL 10, 1972
- My child, you will make it known to Our high priests that they
are not to become involved in politics of the world. They are
being led into the web that will take them into deep darkness.
Hearken now, and heed My words you are being blindly led into
darkness! ....... All who will stand to defend My Son in these
trials, many will be martyred. Your government, your schools,
and now My Son's house (Church) has been entered. Many have sold
their souls to get to the head. The abyss, the deep pit, is filling
fast! ...........Rank in My Son's Church will not guarantee you
entrance into the Kingdom. All who trade in My Son's house will
be judged among the least! You will not bargain My Son for the
things of your earth! ..................Many of Our images are
being removed from among you. Poor misguided children, and teachers!
Do you not recognize the hand of satan! Do you not know that out
of sight, out of mind is a proven fact? The young minds must have
images, or they will cast their eyes on creations of darkness.
The conditions in My Son's House, and in your world, is long in
developing. Satan and his agents have worked their plan well among
you. (vol I page 50)
MAY 30, 1972
- All Heaven cries for the numbers of souls abandoning My Son's
House (Church). They are turning away, but must return and patch
the cracks. Your government, schools, have been entered. My Son's
House has been entered, but if you love My Son you will stay with
Him. Chase satan out with a vigilance of prayer! ..............Your
city of evil will crumble into the dust! Your world leaders, who
are Godless murderers, will fall to the sword! The Judas's in
My Son's House shall fall to the sword. There are many Judas's
in My Son's House. Do you think We do not see you? Your are being
tolerated for you, too, can be saved if you turn from your road
to hell. Turn back, Romans! Turn back while there is still time!
When evil has reached its ultimate, you will be planet struck!
During this trial in cleansing, only a few will be saved! (vol
I page 52)
JUNE 8, 1972
- Forged documents are coming out of Rome. The enemies within
Holy Church seek to place the papacy and Pope Paul in a bad light;
to place the blame on him, in an attempt to tear down the papacy
and set up an international religion and not of Jesus Christ.
Many are accepting as sheep going to the slaughter. They neither
pray nor try to patch the cracks. Many are in need of awakening
to the truth. Rank in the Church is no guarantee of salvation.
The Light is dim now; Jesus will be recrucified by members of
His own House (Church). For what? Hell is their destination! Those
in the Light cannot deny these facts. Shall We say We have a pope
in chains? Yes! He cries, 'help, help!' He is being placed upon
the cross now. Stand behind Holy Father, Pope Paul! Jesus commands
this, now! (vol I page 53)
JUNE 18, 1972
- The monuments (statues) must be returned to My Son's House,
now! All who keep the monuments in their homes will be saved.
The pagan practices that are being condemned in My Son's House
(Church) must now stop! .................All high priests of My
Son's House will live in the spirit and not be concerned with
the politics and worldly living. You will make your choice, you
will stand with My Son, or you will be of the world, and you who
have been given the graces to represent My Son in this world will
be cast aside and condemned with the least for the offenses you
are committing against your God! (vol I page 55)
JULY 15, 1972
- There is great darkness in My Son's House (Church); many have
sold their souls to reach the head. Your Vicar will soon join
the increasing list of martyrhood. .........There was a time,
My child, when satan used only the world, but now he is in My
Son's House, roaming! He has kept it in darkness! He shall not
be victorious, but many tears will be shed before My Son intervenes.................You
shall inform Our bishops that intellectual pride has been their
downfall. You will inform the red hats that they have overstepped
the boundaries you are like rodents burrowing into the structure
of My Son's House! Many mites shall fall into hell! Hell, the
abyss, is open wide. Number three (demon) enters among you. (Three
demons of special mission are loosed, three more to go for 666.)
(vol I page 56)
JULY 25, 1972
- There will be many mitres in hell! Many priests are on the road
to damnation; with them they take others! For them, the lowest
pit of the abyss will be eternity! Those entrusted with My Son's
House will be held accountable for the fall of young souls! Your
rank will be no guarantee of an entrance into the Kingdom! You
have betrayed My Son! How dare you sell His House! You have sold
My Son's House for the profits of your temporary lifetime! Woe
to evil man who has cast aside his God! You will receive the sword!
(vol I page 57)
AUGUST 5, 1972
- St. Peter: Hear me well! Those in the House of God, you will
stop your conversing, your leanings toward modernism, your venturing
with rationalization! Turn back and get on your knees! You have
been deceived by satan. He has been present at your meetings.
Many receive the fate of hell! Your rank in the House of God
gives you no precedence over another soul!, for you, too, will
be cast aside and judged with the least for your part in the final
damnation of those souls entrusted in your care by the Father!
The agents of hell are multiplying
in the House of God. All cardinals and bishops will ask themselves
this question: Can I stand before the Eternal Father and say,
'my teaching has been pure in Your sight? If you can say this
with truth of heart, then you have been misled. Misled! If, in
your truth, you have accepted the riches of the world, and sold
souls for the acceptance of these riches, then you will be spit
out like venom to enter the flames! You shall join Luciel (satan)
in his kingdom! All cardinals and bishops will now take themselves
off the road to hell! They will take their spirit where it belongs,
wherein the realm of good, casting aside their lusts, their desire
for riches, their pampering of the body, while the souls are starving!
No longer will your offenses be tolerated! ...................I
have cried, I have wandered throughout the world pleading with
you to listen to Me! I have also come to your earth to gather
those who will be left to build and rebuild the shambles of My
Son's House (Church), the shambles that satan has created., by
using the will of a fallen generation! (vol I page 59)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972
- Those in My Son's House now receive final warning that they
will not remove Our Vicar from the holy House of God, for to do
so will set in motion the advent of the anti-pope into your house!
You will not defile My Son in this manner!..............All Cardinal,
all Bishops will stop wasting their words and get down on their
knees now! Satan is among you, and his agents are multiplying
in the holy House of God! Many are selling their souls for the
temporary pleasures and riches of the world! Pray, My children,
pray much for those who have fallen! (vol I page 63)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1972
- We see the greatest of evils being perpetrated in the holy House
of God. The example being shown by the high men of the holy House
of God is abominable! The harvest of Lucifer will be great. My
heart has now uncountable thrusts from the hands of My children
on earth. ................The aberrations and abominations being
committed in the holy House of God have had no precedence from
the time of Noah, and before the time of Noah! The offenses to
your God call down justification for the end of your civilization.
(vol I page 64)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1972
- Prayers, prayers! Many prayers are needed for your Vicar! My
Son's House is being subverted from within! The forces of evil
are gathering! There are many groups in secret who make plans
to enter upon the seat of Peter! They have laid the groundwork
of this entrance in well planned secret, but they do not know
that they are only allowed this for the ultimate reversal to good!
Man of his free will, will bring many trials upon himself. This
will be allowed by the Father. All who have received the Light
will not enter upon the wide road. All who have received the Light
will pray and do penance for those who are upon the wide road!
(vol I page 65,66)
NOVEMBER 1, 1972
- The Holy House of God will be cleansed by trial. In this manner,
those who remain when My Son arrive will be ready to set up the
glorious Kingdom! (vol I page 70)
NOVEMBER 20, 1972
- You must return Michael to My House! The exorcism must be brought
back to My House. Man has replaced the unseen world with his worldly
interpretation. He must recognize there is another world, unseen
without the grace of the Father to most but all who are on your
earth must pass on into the other world whether you reach the
Light or descend into darkness for eternity will be of your decision.
(vol I page 71)
DECEMBER 31, 1972
- You have your armor, and I do not expect you to cast this aside.
I know, My children, even in the House of My Son, many of the
learned have chosen to mock the sacramentals! It is only satan's
plan to remove from among them their protection! I repeat anew:
Michael must be returned in prayer to My Son's House! For Michael
will stand guardian over My Son's House (Church). (vol I page
76)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973
- Before this battle is over, many who remain to stand forth to
protect the honor of My Son will be subjected to torments from
their own. Many martyrs will enter into the Kingdom. The persecution
within the House of God will be heavy. The agents of hell seek
to destroy My Son's House on earth. Many of the dedicated will
grow weak and fall in with the plan of satan, preferring to accept
a life without suffering on earth, refusing and casting from their
minds the reality of the eternal life of the Kingdom. (vol I page
80)
FEBRUARY 10, 1973
- We ask all to remain steadfast and do not leave their home parishes.
The heart of the House of God is the coming of My Son through
the Consecration of His Host. Though We sorrow of the antics of
many of Our high priests and clergy, you cannot deny the validity
of the Consecration. (vol I page 85)
MARCH 18, 1973
- My Son is lonely; He has been abandoned in His tabernacle and
His home. The doors have been locked. He remains there a prisoner
of His own............My Son is very lonely in His House. Won't
you come with compassion and ease His loneliness? You do not abandon
those you love. Have you no love for your Creator? Have you no
love for He Who gave His life upon earth for you? Have you no
love for He Who still sheds His Blood for you? ............ There
is now in the world a satanic grouping of one-world planners.
They will eliminate slowly in their plan the Church of Jesus.
This will be accomplished in great haste, should the Seat of Peter
be abandoned at this time. (vol I page 86)
St. Michael: Open the doors and allow
me to enter. Bring me back to stand guard over the House of God.
You open the doors to demons with your permissiveness..............St.
Theresa: There will be no strength in the House of God for man
unless he returns to his ways that have proven strength in the
past. By your fruit will you be known, and many now lie rotten
upon your earth. They have also fallen from the trees before they
grow to bear fruit. (vol I page 87)
MARCH 25, 1973
- The forces of evil always surround a shrine of purity. Therefore,
you will use the invocation to Michael at all times. We have asked
that Michael be entered back into the Holy House of God. His removal
has opened the doors for the entrance of the evil spirits into
the House of God. (vol I page 90)
St. Robert Bellarmine: Why do we
find these abominations in the House of God What is the new modernism
you claim so constructive in the House of God, while we see destruction
about us and the loss of souls to the King of Heaven? Arrogant
man! What are you calling down upon yourself bit your own destruction?
Lovers of pleasure! Fornicators without conscience! Even among
the men of God! what punishment do you call down upon yourselves!
You who should stand forth as an example to your flock have led
them from the road!! (vol I page 91)
APRIL 14, 1973
- Padre Pio: My spiritual children: Hear me, for I bring you the
word of truth. Demons roam in the Houses of God. Prayer must chase
them out! Atonement, prayer and sacrifice! I speak out for an
imprisoned Vicar...........Michael must be returned to the House
of God. All men in the House of God must turn from their worldly
ways and be an example of the living Christ. They will get down
on their knees and pray! Starve their bodies of the demons which
they have entered; allowed to enter upon them. (vol I page 95)
MAY 30, 1973
- The Hand of God will fall heavy upon your world. For a man to
let himself fall into perdition in his lay life, but when this
perdition has entered into the House of God, it calls for a speedy
and fast destruction! For all that is rotten will fall. Weak vines
will break, boughs will be bent, but the Cross of the Living God
shall not be bent by the will of man and to satisfy the design
of a corrupt generation. No-o-o! For woe to those who promoted
evil in the House of God! They will be held accountable in full
measure for the fall of the souls entrusted to their care. (vol
I page 104)
JUNE 8, 1973
- St. Robert Bellarmine: I stand above my namesake, for the battle
ahead will be one not only for the salvation of the human soul,
but for the existence of the true Church of God! (vol I page 108)
JUNE 16, 1973
- You must restore within the House of God a strict discipline
of life and procedure. Return to sacrifice and self-denial. You
must starve your bodies of the demons which you have allowed to
enter upon you. You cannot partake of the full pleasures of earth,
all created for soul-destruction and enter also into the Kingdom.
There is no middle road. The left follows into the darkness; and
the straight road is in the light. (vol I page 109)
St. Michael: You will repeat this,
my child. Rigid discipline and self-control and self-denial must
be exorcised by the men of God in the House of God. Can you not
sacrifice for the souls in your care and your own soul! (vol I
page 110)
JULY 1, 1973
- You have not followed the rules set down by your God, or the
teachings of the prophets of old. You will make a complete reversal
of your ways of arrogance in the House of God. You must divest
yourself of all worldly desires for gain. You must live a life
of sacrifice and simplicity. Only in this manner will you return
to the road that leads to the Kingdom. (vol I page 112)
AUGUST 5, 1973
- You will make it known to the world, and especially, My child,
to the men in the House of God, that We can no longer tolerate
their permissive attitudes in the offenses which they permit,
and are acting in laxity of their permission of offenses to the
Eucharist. .........The House of God will be a sanctity of silence
and adoration. The House of God will be a place of honor among
men. The House of God will not be entered in nakedness. ..................Your
children are wandering into the web of satan, going farther from
the House of My Son. The truth is being removed from their hearts.
They are setting among themselves groups. They shall not remove
from their lives vows of My Son. As the only sanctified
House upon earth, their souls will be destroyed when they are
not given the Bread of Life. This Bread will only be obtained
in the sanctified House of My Son. (vol I page 119)
They must remain with the leaders.
The goats shall be weeded from the House of God, so do not leave.
Stand forth as examples of truth. Many enemies of God have entered
into the House of God. But this is the plan of satan. You will
not leave. You will stay and patch the cracks. The foundation
is solid. The foundation is My Son. (vol I page 120)
AUGUST 5, 1973
- Pagans roam the world, pagans walk into the House of God. Man,
you have reduced yourselves to the state of an animal. Your intellectual
pride has set you down the ladder to the fires. ..........I have
set before you leaders in My House. There are those now who roam
throughout the world, setting themselves, filled with intellectual
pride, to interpret what I have given through the Holy Spirit
to the leaders in My House. You will not break away from My House
and set yourselves up as examples for the young to follow. Return
now to My House, or forever be damned. (vol I page 119,120)
AUGUST 14, 1973
- .....However, it is in the plan of the Father that We shall
gather the House of God and restore it in the world to its proper
proportions. Man, then, will be returned to his former state,
for he will then no longer be forced to offend his God, forced
through the agents of hell who will be removed from your earth.
(vol I page 123)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973
- You must all now return and honor My Son in the tabernacles
throughout the world. The doors of the houses of God must remain
open to do homage to My Son. A constant vigilance of prayer must
be kept in the homes of God and in the homes of the people. (vol
I page 129)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1973
- Michael must be returned to the House of God immediately. Man's
free will has cast him aside. He will not be returned unless man
asks. (vol I page 131)
OCTOBER 2, 1973
- Remove the corruption from within the House of God, and you
will find your doors opened and the Houses of God renewed. (vol
I page 137)
OCTOBER 6, 1973
- Man must not flee from the houses of My Son. Much evil and corruption
has entered into the hearts of many, even in the houses of My
Son. However, it was doomed and deemed for this time to come about,
for man to pass through a crucible of suffering, one which is
a test. All that is rotten will fall. The sheep will be separated
from the goats. (vol I page 139)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973
- There are many in the House of God who have been misled. They
are not to be castigated, but make known to them the Message from
Heaven. The Father is always the final judge. Speak once and if
not hastened, say no more. But keep in heart, My child, that it
may not be of their decision. Errors abound, confusion reigns,
and many are running in circles. Do you not recognize the ways
of satan? He is the master of confusion. A practiced rule sets
a firm foundation...........St. Thomas: Confusion, delusion, misrepresentation.
Man must not rewrite under the direction of satan. Pray for the
light. The words of the founding Fathers have always passed the
test of time. Novelty in the House of God will bring darkness
and open the door for entrance of the evil spirits. Return to
the rules. This foolishness is bringing upon you the wrath of
the Father.
It is arrogant of man to set himself
above the Father. It is pride of man who wishes to place himself
above the founding Fathers. The rules for your salvation and the
way was given fully in the Book of life and love. No changes will
be made. The contents will not be altered to follow the fancy
of man. When you start burrowing into the foundation, you weaken
the structure. However, the foundation of the House of God is
in the light. The walls may crumble, but the foundation is always
there. Rebuild the walls, patch the cracks, and return the sheep
that have strayed. ......We see, we look with consternation upon
the actions of those who should be setting by their rank good
standards. We find the houses of God being emptied. The House
is abandoned by the whims of man, man who has turned to satan.
Prayer has been abandoned in the House of God and in the lives
of the laity. Unless you pray, you will be lost. (vol I page 145)
DECEMBER 7, 1973
- St. Peter: I must not slacken in the objective given me by
the Father to make known to you that the men in the House of God
have given themselves to error. You will not change the words
of the Book of Life to satisfy the basic desires of mankind. These
actions are not of the spirit of godliness, but of the spirit
of darkness. These actions are being promoted by the prince of
darkness. (vol I page 147)
My child, though man will disprove
these manifestations, they are in for a great surprise. The
Father has a plan to awaken those who have fallen asleep in His
House. (vol I page 149)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974
- The House of God, My Son's House, will proceed through great
trial. All that is rotten will fall. Satan now rages and will
do full battle in the House of God. The greatest hope, My children,
I can offer you, is that the eventual victory over the evil will
lie with your legions with My Son. ................The Father
has full mastery over your world, permitting this time of trial
in order to separate the sheep from the goats. You will be tried
as metals in the fire. (vol I page 166)
There is much confusion, My child,
in your world, confusion that has been created by satan. There
is only one major means now to rid satan from the House of God
and your homes, that is prayer, and turning to My Son. Save your
souls and the souls of all those you love in the Sacred Heart
of My Son. (vol I page 167)
MARCH 18, 1974
- Prepare, My children, for the great battle ahead. The forces
of evil now will do full battle for control of My House. Know
that satan shall not be victorious, but it is in this manner that
you will be tested. Persevere, and you shall win your crown. (vol
I page 172)
MARCH 24, 1974
- St. Paul: Repeat what you hear, my child, and shout it from
the rooftops. No woman shall be on the altars of God! Disobedience,
lack of respect for the Holy Father; what will this bring you
to but your own destruction! A church that falls into darkness
will fall. The foundation will rock, but the foundation shall
not be destroyed. For it will be renewed and built as it was ordained
by the Father. (vol I page 177)
APRIL 6, 1974
- The gates of hell are open wide, but they shall not prevail
against the Church of My Son. This He left to you as a guide,
as you go on the narrow road and make your way back to the Kingdom.
Too many have set themselves on the wide road, and given themselves
to satan. (vol I page 184)
Accept fast and atonement. I have
asked in the past, many times, that the leaders and the teachers
in the house of God, the Church of My Son, that they fast and
do great penance, pray more, for they have allowed the demons
to enter upon them. The Father finds their leadership very poor
and He will judge accordingly, and all shall receive the fruits
and merits of their actions and their leadership. (vol I page
185)
It is a knife in the heart when We
see the fall of the souls of Our children, but it is countless
knives in the Heart of My Son, and I, when We know that Our Houses
have fallen to satan! (vol I page 186)
The statues, the monuments of godly
Nature must be returned to My Son's House and to the homes. Prayer,
atonement and sacrifice, My children! Wear your sacramentals,
My Heart is heavy and My voice grows weak, but I have promised
you that I will be with you unto the coming of My Son. (vol I
page 187)
APRIL 13, 1974
- There will be many false prophets upon the world. There are
many false prophets in the world, My child. They bring doctrines
that are not of the truth. A great delusion has been set upon
man. Error abounds in the House of God. A House in darkness shall
shut its doors, for a band of death will be placed about it. (vol
I page 188)
Satan has entered into the House
of God. He rules now from the highest places. The world and the
Church of God are in deep darkness. Those who are in command,
many have fallen away. Pray, My children, much, for with your
prayers and sacrifices, they too can be recovered. (vol I page
189)
Do not judge the House of God by
the works of man. The Foundation of the House of God is the Father
in the Son and the Holy Ghost. The foundation that you understand
in your human nature, is Jesus. (vol I page 190)
These sons of satan have worked many
years to tear down the House of God but they shall not succeed.
It is sad, My child, to know that those whom We have chosen have
set themselves in conspiracy against the House of My Son. For
he love of money, many will sell their souls. They care more for
the pleasures of earth than for the eternal glories of the Kingdom
of the Father. How sad it will be, the weeping, the gnashing of
teeth, when they come over the veil and know that they will long
for what may have been. (vol I page 193)
MAY 22, 1974
- My child, shout, shout from the rooftops. Your brothers and
sisters must not turn from My Son's House. They are judging, My
child, on the actions of man. Man, men of earth, are but the walls
of My Son's Church. He is the foundation. Do not run away from
Him, but console Him. He is lonely, My child. The doors are locked.
(vol I page 196)
The Order of Michael will be established
in the United States. Michael is the guardian of My Son's House.
Michael will be entered into My Son's House or your country will
fall. The doors will shut, persecution will reign in the House
of My Son. And all that is rotten will fall! Pray much, My child.
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer. Rosaries of prayer throughout
the world, link to link, bead to bead, soul to soul across your
nation and the world. You are living now in the days of trial,
and you will all be tested and receive your just reward from the
Father. (vol I page 199)
JUNE 8, 1974
- Michael has set himself over the Houses of My Son. He seeks
to stop the abominations being committed in these Houses, Churches.
You will not chew My Son. You will not defame Him. You will not
destroy His Image! You will give Him the honor that is due your
God! ........Those who have been given the leadership in My Son's
House will one day stand before the Father, and will they be able
to say that their leadership has been just in His eyes? Shall
you stand before Him and say that your teaching has been clean
of impurities? (vol I page 109)
JUNE 15, 1974
- We of the Kingdom of the Father find many errors being propagated
in My Son's House, Church. It is the great deception that is permitted
for mankind in these latter days. It will be in this manner that
the sheep shall be separated from the goats. All who have given
themselves to satan will be known, for their fruits shall fall
for they will wither on the vine, and all that is rotten shall
fall! ................We have asked all who are with My Son, not
to abandon his House. Do not judge His House, on the man who has
been governing it, your pastors and your clergy! For they are
only human, subject to sin even. Remember that the heart and the
true foundation of Jesus's House is the Eucharist, that you receive
in the Holy Communion. Woe unto that day, My child, when this
is even denied you! ...........There is developing, My child,
in your country and the world, a most dangerous trend: It is
one of separation from the Peter, the head of your Church. You
will not bring about this separation from the Seat of Rome! You
have nothing to gain but everything to lose, for should you go
ahead with this plan of separation, you will lead unto the road
of the abyss, leading to the abyss, many souls. Woe unto those
pastors! Woe unto, the clergy who now set themselves up as leaders
to confuse, confound and mislead! (vol I page 213)
Pagans, pagans, My child, pagans
roaming also in the House of My Son! Is there no one who will
go and cheer them out? I have asked you, for the Father, to return
Michael to My Son's House. He is the guardian of the faith. Michael,
must be entered into My Son's House. (vol I page 215)
JUNE 18, 1974
- The Order of St. Michael will go forward throughout your country
and the world. You will heed the direction of the Father that
Michael be entered back into the Houses of My Son, Churches. Michael
is the guardian of the House of God. He shall not be kept out
of the Houses of God. If you do not allow the guardian in, you
will open the door for the entrance of the evil spirits. (vol
I page 223)
JULY 15, 1974
- Satan has set himself to do great battle in My Son's House.
Hurry. Shout from the rooftops! Warn all of Our clergy that they
are under heavy attack by the agents of darkness. They must not
be misled! Their influence is great over the young. Many who carry
high honor in My Son's House by their rank have set themselves
into My Son's House with black hearts. They come to destroy; they
have been sent to destroy. But they shall not destroy! A house
in darkness must close its doors. Errors, evil, destruction of
the young, the souls contaminated by dark waters, this shall not
be tolerated by the Father. All who have given themselves to the
fleshpots of the world have received their reward! All who have
sold their souls to get to the head in My Son's House, they have
received their reward! The abyss of hell is open wide. None shall
escape a just judgment from the Father! This judgment will come
soon upon you in force! (vol I page 230)
You are living now in the times known
in your world as the anti-Christ, against My Son. All who reject
My Son as the Messiah cannot enter into the Kingdom! What fallacy
is there being permitted in My Son's House! You are uniting unbelievers
for your own destruction! My Son founded His House upon earth.
You will not bring in unbelievers and change it! You will not
convert souls by permissiveness! You will destroy! You feed the
bodies and destroy the souls. (vol I page 232)
JULY 25, 1974
- The Father will not tolerate the abomination being committed
in the Houses of God. Many of His dedicated are being permissive
in their approach to the salvation of souls. You will not gain
nor redeem souls by lowering the standards. Many of Our dedicated,
clergy and foolish maidens of the nunneries, have given themselves
to the world, the flesh and the devil. How sad that such great
graces could go by and be cast aside for the temporary pleasures
of the world. (vol I page 234)
Know that when the world and your
Church on earth become as one, the end is at hand. The gates of
hell, open wide, they will claim all, even mitres that have given
themselves to worldly gain and the destruction of their sheep!
The gates of hell shall not prevail against My Son's House! (vol
I page 236)
AUGUST 5, 1974
- The enemies of God entered into the Houses of My Son many earth
years ago. Their plan has been insidious and with much cunning
they came forward, coming into the highest places in power within
the Houses of My Son. In this manner, My children, they have been
able to mislead, misguide and set many souls onto the road to
destruction of their eternal souls. We place a great responsibility
upon all parents to bring the truth to their children. (vol I
page 238)
AUGUST 14, 1974
- All man is and was a creation of the Father, but not all man;
or all men; will enter into the Kingdom of the Father! Only a
few will be numbered in the final count. You all will receive
this chance and you may reject it, or accept the graces and the
path given to you to win eternal life with the Father, or eternal
damnation in the abyss!...........You will not destroy My Son's
House, Church, buy consorting with the enemies of My Son! You
will not convert the enemy by lowering the standards! Your example
must be one of a steadfast faith........... Change, what need
of change when the foundation has proved through the test of time?
It is the dissatisfied man, a greed and lustful man, who seeks
change! Does he change to bring man to God! No-o--! He changes
to take man from God!, and give him to Lucifer! (vol I page 242)
Satan was present, he listened with
careful ears at the Great Council. He awaited every move, and
he placed his agents among you! Recognize and reconstruct your
path! You have been deluded! You are on the wrong road! Turn about
now, or you will sow the seeds for your own destruction.............What
can you do, My child, you can pray and pray. Be on your knees,
so few now bend their knees! War is a punishment for man's sins.
...........The irreverence given to My Son in His Houses upon
earth cry out to Heaven for vengeance! (vol I page 242,243)
The Mercy of the Father is great.
None will be lost if he will turn now from his present course.
Return My House to the state of a firm foundation and mend the
cracks that you have wrought into the walls! Bring My sheep, gather
them back into My Houses! No longer dispense them with your example!
You will not change My words! You will not change My direction!
You will stay on the narrow path and you will bring My sheep onto
this path, or you will answer to the Father and be condemned as
such for having destroyed the sheep entrusted to you. (vol I page
245)
AUGUST 21, 1974
- My Son set His House upon earth. All who left, left in rebellion,
in protest. Are you to join them? Shall you compromise your Faith?
No! All who sell out the Houses of My Son shall receive a recompense
or eternal damnation!...........There are, My children, thieves,
robbers in My Son's Houses! Money-changers in the temple! The
Father watches all and tolerates for the sake of the elect. The
Chastisement will claim many, good and evil. (vol I page 246)
St. Michael: My child, shout it
from the rooftops! He did his work well! The walls are crumbling!
A House, Church, in darkness shall wear a band of death about
it! O woe, woe to mankind! You do not know what is before you!
Open your doors to me! Do not shut me out! I cannot enter into
the churches without your desire! (vol I page 247)
Control, you must know, My child,
and tell the world, that satan has control now of many major positions
in the House of God, in the Eternal City of Rome. Traitors surround
your Vicar. His sufferings are great. ............Already they
have chosen his successor. But pray, My children, pray much that
he not be removed for woe to the world! The crucifixion of the
Mystical Body of Christ will come to mankind! (vol I page 248)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974
- The greatest knowledge, My child, is the eventual victory and
reign of My Son upon earth. There will be great trials. Many will
fall by the wayside, unable to carry their crosses. Many will
choose the easy road. But keep a steady course, for My Son is
at the help. Know, My child, that the Bark of Peter flounders,
but My Son is at the helm. Those who are asleep will be
awakened. Pray for those in darkness that they may come
into the light, My child. (vol I page 258)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974
- Your protector and the guardian of your Faith has not been entered
into the Houses of My Son. Know that you will deceive yourselves
with this action. Michael must be entered into the prayers and
hearts of mankind! All clergy, all shepherds of the flock, must
praise the Father through His guardian, Michael. You must return
Michael in your prayers after the Holy Sacrifice! (vol I page
260)
There are many traitors, enemies
of the Father in Heaven, in My Son's Houses! They will fall like
rotten fruit as We shake the trees, on that day when My Son shall
set all to right! All that is rotten will fall! A good tree will
not bear bad fruit! By their fruits will they be known to you.
..........My Son is a firm foundation. His House will go through
much trial but will never be destroyed! Before the House of My
Son shall fall, mankind shall be cleansed with fire! The sun shall
scorch your earth and the skin will burn and dry up and blow off
the bones as though it had never been. Eyes will see and many
will still not believe, so weak is the faith! When My Son returns,
shall He find, My child, even a flicker of Faith left? The numbers
saved will be counted in the few. Pray, pray much, My child. Days
of great trial are ahead. ..........My Son's Houses, My child,
the Churches of earth, are on troubled seas! He stands fast at
the helm! Do not abandon Him! Pray! Pray that they do not remove
from among you the tabernacles! (vol I page 261)
You must not, My children, compromise
the Faith of My Son's House! You will not save souls by meeting
them when they have fallen away and protested against the true
teaching of My Son. You must bring them into His House, not tear
down His House and enter upon those who have fallen and constructed
another structure. No! Patch the cracks in My Son's House. Set
a better example and the walls will echo to the praises of the
Father and the return of many souls into the light. (vol I page
262)
He shall not unite as one, the ways
of the world and My Son's House, Church! Man shall not be set
up as an idol to worship! The following of the this course has
condemned many to hell! Be they laymen or wearing mitres upon
their head. They, too, have fallen into the abyss! They have free
will, they have chosen to offend the Father and discard the trust
given to them in their vocation. (vol I page 264)
OCTOBER 6, 1974
- I accept the torments which are heaped upon Me by an ungrateful
generation! You will not cast aside the knowledge of the supernatural!
You will not cast aside the truth of Faith and set up a faith
based on the immorality of man! No! You will retain the Faith
and Tradition as given to you, not making changes that cater to
the basic carnal nature of mankind! You are misleading Our sheep!
Pray! Get down on your knees and pray! You will gain nothing by
socializing. You have idolized money and become money changers
in My Son's House! ............ My Son shall fling you out of
the temples again! Moneychangers in the House of God! Destroyers
of the Truth! Turn back now for your judgment will be far greater
than those given to an ordinary man, for you as a priest of God
have been chosen by the Father to represent My Son and as such
your judgment for misleading and denying the basic truth of your
Faith will be far greater! (vol I page 280)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974
- I ask , as your Mother, to turn back now from the ways that
offend the Father! You are re crucifying My Son! You desecrate
His Body! We do not want the women standing upon the altars of
the house of My Son! Why do you not listen, My children? We gave
you the plan for setting up the House of God. My Son set the plan.
He sent Paul to you with the plan. Read, My children, the book
of love and life, your Bible. You are misguided! (vol I page 287)
If you do not pray and cleanse your
government and daily lives of the evil which you have allowed
in, many Houses of My Son will shut their doors and you will no
longer have the light among you. Pray a constant vigilance of
prayer. Chase the demons out of My Son's Houses. Those in authority
must remove the bad seed from My Son's Houses! (vol I page 288)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974
- My Son is much grieved, My child, in the manner in which many
come to Him in His House. They come with disrespect; they do not
have love for Him in their hearts, My child, please, they lead
themselves onto the road to satan. They must not accept My Son
with sin in their hearts. Many do not go to Our representatives.
They accept My Son with sin on their souls! Shout it, My child,
from the roofs; you must honor the Eucharist! (vol I page 298)
You must all stand firm in your faith.
Do not abandon My Son's House, Church. Know that you must not
judge My Son's House by the actions of man. Man has been created
by the Father, and man in his human nature can fall, My child.
Do not judge My Son's Church by the actions of man. Know that
regardless of the actions of man, My Son will always be there
in the Eucharist. A duly ordained and consecrated hand of a legal
representative, your priest, will always be able to bring to you
My Son's Body and Blood in the Eucharist. The enemies of My Son
wish to take this truth from you. They say that the Mass is not
valid. That is not true, My child. Through the power of the Father
in the Spirit, My Son comes to you. He comes to you physically
and spiritually in presence. Do not accept the error of your day
that this is a story or myth, My children. I assure you My Son
is there with you. (vol I page 299)
DECEMBER 6, 1974
- The Father has not lost count of the evil abominations being
committed in the Houses of My Son throughout the world, the Churches,
being committed among the people of earth! Families disintegrating
into cesspools of filth! Immorality! Parents that lead their children
to sin! (vol I page 305,311)
DECEMBER 28, 1974
- Those who have been given the rule in My Son's House, Church,
there is much wanting in their rule! The laxity of their teaching
shall not be tolerated by the Father! My Son is much grieved because
He finds the greatest responsibility being lost, the teaching
polluted by those He has chosen among mankind to direct and gather
His sheep for the Kingdom! Woe to those who have cast aside the
rule and given themselves to the pleasures of the flesh! (vol
I page 313)
A house in darkness wears a band
of death about it! The family that will pray together, will stay
together. My child, Pray a constant vigilance in your homes and
you will make the demons flee. They cannot stay in a house of
prayer. You will understand, My child, why satan has entered My
Son's House on earth, the Church! Because there was not enough
prayer! Man talks, idly talks of worldly matters when he should
concentrate on the spiritual. (vol I page 316)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975
- Pious XII: Rules and regulations, My child. they must be followed.
You will not change the rules to suit the man. The rules have
already been written down. There is no reason to have them rewritten.
It is satan who is rewriting the rules! Awaken from your stupor!
Take the cobwebs from your minds! You are blinded to the truth!
A sad state exists in the House of God! Awaken from your slumber!
(vol I page 331)
MARCH 18, 1975
- Women must adorn themselves in modestly. Pagan practices of
diabolical music is not condoned by the Eternal Father! Nor shall
We condone dancing and all manner of worldly entering within the
Holy Houses of God!...............Women must cover her head! It
is a respect required in the House of God. This, the angels demand!
(vol I page 339)
MARCH 22, 1975
- You must enter the Houses of your God properly clothed and with
goodness of heart, not disporting yourselves as pagans. A quietude
must be returned to the Houses of God. You come to communicate,
My children, in spirit and body with My Son Who is with you in
your Eucharist in Spirit and Body, a true Physical Presence. Many
now are despoiling His Body! How many have set themselves to solace
Him in the evil that is about the world now! (vol I page 347)
We look upon pagan practices, My
child, in the House of God. It will not be tolerated by the Father.
Remember, My child, the evil ones danced around My Son as He shed
His blood upon the tree. (vol I page 348)
MARCH 29, 1975
- I shall be entered into the Houses of your God or you shall
not have a full protection against the forces of evil that are
raging now throughout your world. (vol I page 352)
APRIL 5, 1975
- This scene, this diabolical quandary, My child, is spreading
throughout your world. Blood shall flow in the streets of all
nations. The red flag shall rise over many convents and the Houses
of My Son. All that is rotten will fall! A House in darkness wears
a band of death about it. A Church in darkness wears a band of
death about it. Pray for your clergy for many mitres will fall
into hell! (vol I page 355)
MAY 28, 1975
- St. Francis: My child, Veronica, we despair in Heaven for we
do not see the beads of prayer being fingered often in our monasteries.
(vol I page 371)
JUNE 5, 1975
- All My Churches upon earth, all that go into darkness will fall.
All that descend into darkness will close their doors. A House
in darkness wears a band of death about it. (vol I page 373)
Since mankind refuses to mend his
ways, to return to his state of sanctity in My Holy Church throughout
the world, there is no other recourse but to send upon mankind
chastisements, to return him to the fold. ...........I need not
repeat now the chastisements planned by the Eternal Father for
mankind. I am certain that My Mother, has made this quite clear
to you in the past..............My Church, My House, was given
to you in entirety. There is no need now to change!!..........The
only change necessary now, My children, is to go back and restore
the light!!!.............Holiness, piety, dedication must be returned
to the Churches, or the vocations will fall! The Churches will
be emptied and the leaders will be imprisoned by their enemies
that have come to them as angels of light but ravenous hearts.
(vol I page 375)
JULY 15, 1975
- Holiness, dedication of purpose and pure truth must be returned
to the Houses of God in your world! (vol I page 382)
JULY 25, 1975
- You must pray much for your clergy. A House, a Church, in darkness,
My children, will shut its doors, for a Church in darkness wears
a band of death about it. (vol I page 386)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- The teachers in the House of God, will you stand before the
Eternal Father and declare that your teachings have been pure
in His sight? No, I say unto you, you must now mend your ways,
you who have given yourselves to the world of satan! You must
turn now and make amends! Restore My Son's House to a House of
sanctity and piety and holiness! You'll gain nothing by uniting
My Son's House with the world. (vol I page 392)
Satan now has entered into many Houses
of My Son, churches, throughout the world. A pastor must remain
true to his Faith. If he gives himself to the world, he will find
it difficult to return to the narrow path that leads to the Eternal
Kingdom of God the Father........Satan has placed many agents
in high positions in your governments of your world and also in
the Houses of God. You will not compromise your Faith, My children.
You will not unite the world into one religion for it will not
be that given by My Son, but a religion of darkness...............The
foundation for your Church, My children, is My Son. The Trinity
shall be your guide: In the name of the Father, and of the Son,
and of the Holy Ghost. One God in Three Persons, My child, but
in One God; God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost.
(vol I page 393)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975
- The children! The children, what shall become of them? Heresy,
O mournful heresy! Who will cleanse My Son's House upon earth?
Abomination upon abomination! The sword pierces My Heart! The
defilement of My Son's Body, O abomination upon abomination, whatever
shall become of you? .........All reverence, My children, all
discipline must be returned to My Son's Church! False pastors
shall be cast out!...........Tradition, My children, shall not
bring in doctrines of devils!!! Nooo!! You shall not seek change,
as you are given this by satan!.........My Son does not want change
that sets you into darkness!.......A firm foundation shall withstand
the trials and storms of time. All that is rotten shall fall!
My Son, My children, is your Foundation......The church of man
shall be the destruction of man!! (vol I page 412)
OCTOBER 6, 1975
- Pastors, upon earth, why have you scattered your sheep? Why
do you follow the call of the serpent? Why have you taken My Son's
House, Church, and destroyed the knowledge of their God? You are
building for yourselves a Church that will be one of man and not
of your God. Stone upon stone, you build using all of the treasures
of your world to build it, but they will crumble; each stone shall
fall, none will be left unturned in the Chastisement. Then, what
will you have gained for your sins? (vol I page 428)
Pastors in the House of God, We have
been watching and finding you wanting. How many warnings shall
you receive as you conduct yourselves and your sheep like pagans
in the House of prayer? You are setting up money changers in My
House and I shall cleanse them again! No man shall defile the
House of God! No man shall use this House for self gain! All that
is rotten shall fall! (vol I page 431)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975
- You must not seek novelty in My Son's House. Many abominations
sadden My Heart. There is great lack of respect during the Holy
Service, My children. My Son's House, His House throughout your
earth, have become meeting places of demons. ......... There are
organizations, My children, in your daily lives, that have been
set up by satan. They come as angels of light, infiltrating even
into the Sacred Houses of My Son, the Churches. You must learn
to recognize the faces of evil. The foundation of your Faith and
Tradition have been given to you. You do not seek novelty in change.
(vol I page 439)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975
- All manner of novelty and experimentation must be removed from
My Church now! You have been given the rule. You have been given
the way. Restore My House now, for a House in darkness wears a
band of death about it. The doors will close! Souls will be starved
for the light. Blood shall flow in the streets. Death shall become
common-place. Is this what you want? The wages of sin is death.
What will it gain you, if you gain your whole world in treasures,
but cannot take them with you to your judgment. Your judgment
is eternal, forever! (vol I page 445)
I send you, My clergy, those who
I have given the grace to represent Heaven upon earth, this warning:
You must now return to your Traditional Rites. You must restore
My House from its crumbling exterior and rotting interior. You
must rebuild what you seek to destroy, NOW!.......Many who call
themselves My chosen one, have set themselves to destroy from
within. Your actions have not gone by unnoticed by the Eternal
Father. Errors, deception, deceit, in the guise of sanctity and
piousness! You are unmasked before the Eternal Father. You shall
start little by little and repair the foundation, or you shall
be within and destroyed! (vol I page 446)
DECEMBER 6, 1975
- You must keep your armor upon you, your sacramentals. You must
remain with My Son in the Eucharist. In the Tabernacles throughout
the world. There is much confusion at this time and much error
to the Houses of My Son. But do not turn away! You must stay and
pray and set a good example for those who run about in confusion
are trying all manner of novelty. (vol I page 449)
DECEMBER 27, 1975
- The simple plan for the Redemption of mankind was given to you
in the past by your prophets. Already We hear you clamor for the
ordination of women! No woman shall stand in My House to represent
Me! How dare you bring in this heresy to My House? I shall be
among you and I shall sling you out from My Temples! (vol I page
461)
I, your God, demand that you cleanse
yourselves now! We extend to you a time to bring this about! You
are not hidden in your evil ways from Our eyes! Do you think you
shall escape a just punishment! Noooo! Amen, I say to you, no
rank shall make you escape the fires! You who call yourselves
My Pastors and have sold your souls to get to the head! You who
have taken the young to destroy their souls with all manner of
novelty and innovations in My House! I did not ask you for change!
I did not ask you to discard the words of your first teachers,
the Apostles! In your arrogance, you laugh and are derisive of
their teachings! You set yourself up another church, not My House.
I shall not represent Myself in Body and Spirit in your new house!
Shall I separate My Pastors and cause more confusion! Nooo! The
Eternal Father deems to cleanse you! There shall not be
another separation. ................Amen! Amen, I say
to you, you have just about reached a point of no return from
your destructive ways! You shall not open the doors of the Eternal
City to all separated brethren who reject the Christ! (vol I page
461,462)
DECEMBER 31, 1975
- You will remove woman from My Church. As leaders and rulers
of what? What manner of foul action do you promote?...In the beginning
I gave to you through your prophets the establishment of My Church
upon earth........The rules were simple but now have become changed
and defiled to please the carnal nature of mankind........You
must restore the holiness to My House! You must bend your knees
in humility and penance. (vol I page 463)
Pray, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer for your priests, cardinals, bishops, your clergy, for
a great test, a delusion has been set amongst them, to test their
valor, to test holiness, to test their fidelity to My Son's Church!
Oh sorrow of sorrows from your Mother's heart, that as We now
go throughout your world, can We say that there are one hundred
true priests left in My Son's House? Shall He return and find
even a flicker of Faith left among His sheep? The shepherds don't
carry the light. (vol I page 466)
JANUARY 31, 1976
- My voice has carried throughout your world for many earth-years,
We do not see a measurable change in the ways of man, ways that
offend the Eternal Father. We see My Son's Church slowly falling.
The foundation is solid, but the walls are cracking. A Church
in darkness wears a band of death about it! all that is rotten
shall fall!...........What manner of evil is in these seminaries,
My children, that they promote fallacies and heresy, permissive
behavior, a morality that now is based on advanced science and
theology! The Eternal Father gave the mode, the manner for man
to save his soul, simple, clear, and unadulterated with the evil
that now has set My Son's Church in darkness! (vol I page 469)
Before the Chastisement, My Mother's
words will have reached throughout the world, and the sheep will
have been separated from the goats. All that is rotten shall fall.
My House kept in darkness shall fall! It shall be cleansed! (vol
I page 470)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976
- The Eternal City of Rome, My children, is undergoing a great
trial. It is a sad fact that the doors were opened and all manners
of people that do not possess the light entered; heretics and
separated brethren who have come not to join, but to confuse,
confound, and rend asunder the Church of My Son. (vol I page 472)
MARCH 18, 1976
- You must, My children, tell your brothers and sisters that they
must not at this time separate themselves from your ruling bodies
within your Church. Satan has set upon the world much confusion
and error. You must pray a constant vigilance of prayer that you
do not fall into error. Do not be concerned of the confusion that
satan has set upon all at this time. Believe and you will be given
the way. All that is rotten shall fall. The enemies of your God
shall be exposed, for by their fruits shall they be known. (vol
I page 475)
The world has now become a battleground
of the spirits. You must not become engrossed in inconsequential,
minor matters involving your salvation, My children. I refer to
the separation of your brothers and sisters from My Son's Church,
as they are misled. They are misled because it is not the plan
of the Eternal Father to have a schism, a breaking away from My
Son's Church. (vol I page 475)
How many earth-years have I come
down from Heaven to reach you with these words of warning and
direction? I have pleaded with the pastors within My Son's Church
to return to their tradition. I have pleaded for recognition of
fact and truth and the destruction that is now being perpetrated
by a conspiracy of the Red Hats in My Son's Church. O My children,
the Red Hat has fallen and the Purple Hat is being misled...................I
repeat for your enlightenment again: No woman shall stand in the
Sacrifice as a priest. How dare you set yourselves for a change
created by satan! The plan of the Eternal Father has been made
quite clear to you. Your father now is not the Eternal Father
of Heaven, but the father of all liars, satan! My Son's Body,
sacrificed for you, tortured for you, is now being re-crucified
in His own Church! (vol I page 477)
APRIL 10, 1976
- The great Sacrifice, My child, has been misunderstood by many.
It was the will of the Eternal Father that one universal language
be used along with, in comparison with, together with the language
of the land. This universal language, Latin, befit and was chosen
by the Eternal Father as a universal language for the universal
Church, the Roman Catholic Church under the leadership of Pope
Paul VI, the successor of Peter. Do you not understand, My children
that you were united in beauty, that you were united in understanding?
Because of the fall in Babylon, many
new languages were given because of the sin of Babylon. Therefore,
as a member of one country, My children, with a universal language,
you carried with you your own country's translation, and were
you to visit abroad, you could enter upon any foreign edifice,
Church of My Son, and feel comfortable and in one with the man,
the priest, the one chosen by My Son to represent Him in His House.
If you were, My child to go from your United States to France,
could you understand the words in French? But, My child, you would
recognize the words in Latin and you would have your book with
you to read in your American language, just as those in France
could read in their French language, bringing upon the world a
beautiful and common bond of language among all who have been
given the grace to be called to the Roman Catholic Church of My
Son.
Do not leave My Son's Church though,
My children, because they have taken this language from among
you. You must wait and persevere and weep with My Son for this
defilement by man. It is a great sorrow to the Eternal Father
that this folly has been perpetrated by the men who wear the Red
Hats and the Purple Hats within My Son's Church. O cardinals and
bishops, shall you stand before My Son and say to Him in judgment
that your teaching has been pure in His sight? (vol I page 479)
Satan has been given much power.
Luciel, cast out of Heaven onto earth, is doing great battle now
with Our children. He knows that his time is growing short. His
plan, My children, and listen well, is to capture the ruling body
within My Son's Church. (vol I page 480)
APRIL 17, 1976
- As in the days of old when My Son sacrificed His Body upon your
earth, it is now that He is being recrucified in His Church and
in the hearts of mankind. O My children, if only I could open,
open the world to you and allow you to see what is going to become
of you. You who do not listen and follow My direction, I have
come to you as a Mediatrix between God and man. I have been sent
to you in these days of great trial. It is truly the time of great
sorrows. (vol I page 482)
The true Church of Jesus in Rome
is being attacked by the forces of 666. It is a world wide involvement
that cannot be fully described at this time. It is a diabolical
involvement that will be made fully known with the Second Coming
of Jesus. (vol I page 484)
A Church in darkness wears a band
of death about it. Remember that, My pastors. A Church in darkness
shall close its doors! But My Church shall not be extinct or destroyed,
for the church of man cannot transcend the spirit. (vol I page
485)
MAY 15, 1976
- No, My pastors, I shall not destroy earth. It will be a gradual
cleansing. It will be the forces of the world. Do you think, as
pastors, that I left a heritage to you of words that were not
true? You take My Book, the Bible, you tear it and rebuild it
with the work of satan! Restore My Church, or I shall come and
I shall chase you of light against the forces of darkness. The
sheep shall be separated from the goats. The ultimate cleansing
shall be given to mankind. It will be a celestial punishment............The
plan for your salvation was given. It was a simple plan of faith,
faith in what has been given to you in the past! You mock the
past in Tradition! You set yourselves to build a new church. The
gates of hell shall never prevail against My Church! ..........
Man shall not judge My Church on the actions of man, for man now
is taking it and building a church for man, not to honor his God,
the Eternal Father, not to honor and prepare his soul for the
entrance over the veil! No! He is now wasting valuable time in
promoting a mode of humanism and modernism. You are feeding the
nature, the carnal nature of mankind, while you are starving their
spirit. (vol I page 488)
MAY 26, 1976
- My child, We watch and see the Houses of My Son crumbling, being
destroyed throughout your world. Doors are closing, convents are
emptying, and the dedicated are leaving and falling into all manner
of sin and abominations. Who shall be in the remnant? Only a few
will be saved. (vol I page 490)
You are blind, My pastors. You permit
untold evil to ravage My House. How long do you think I will permit
you to mislead and destroy the souls entrusted to you? I want
an end to the experimentation in My House. I want an end to novelty.
Restore My House, or I will come and send you out of it!................My
House is becoming fast a den of thieves! My House has become a
show place for demons! My House must be cleansed from within.
You polish the cup, and the dirt lies within. (vol I page 491)
MAY 29, 1976
- The world has entered upon My Son's Church. You have made it
a meeting place for all manner of sinners, all commissions of
abominations. Holiness, dedication, piety must be returned to
My Son's House, Church. All manners of change and novelty are
destroying the souls entrusted to you! (vol I page 493)
We do not want a separation within
My Son's House, the Roman Catholic Church under Peter and now
Pope Paul VI. We do not want a separation within My Son's House.
The United States of America heads fast to a schism,. Fight, My
children; do not give in to the forces of evil. Fight the enemy
with prayer. (vol I page 494)
My Houses, the houses throughout
your world are fast becoming dens of thieves. I shall cleanse
them in My own time, and that time is short............Many mitres
now hold major responsibility for the loss of their sheep. You
have scattered them in all directions. And now what do you intend
to do to restore My House? Restore My House now, for I shall return
and I shall send you out of My House, forever lost to Heaven.
Your rank has no precedence over another soul when this soul is
being sent into the abyss. You hold a major responsibility for
the loss of My sheep. (vol I page 495)
JUNE 5, 1976
- Bishops in My Son's House, Church, you have gone astray. You
have scattered Our sheep. You have joined with all manner of heretics
and false teachers. You started with good intentions in your Council
but you became deluded in your search for peace and brotherhood.
You allowed all manner of error to creep slowly into My Son's
House, Church. You must understand that you are setting in motion
the formation of World Council of Churches, but it will not be
the Church of My Son. It will be a church of man, a church without
the true foundation. ..........My children, do not compromise
your Faith. Do not join with the enemies of My Son. And I say
unto you: All who know of My Son and deny that He is the Christ,
they are the antichrist. Birds of a feather will flock together.
Do not become unevenly yoked. You must not gather all churches
with the one true Church, for you cannot do this now. You are
deceived, and you are deceiving...........You must not compromise
your Faith. You cannot lower your standards and bring others into
My Son's Church, for you bring in all manner of heresy and abominations.
By your example did you gather Our sheep, and by your example
now do you scatter them. I say, as your Mother: Turn back from
your road, for you are on the way to perdition. Know there has
been sent upon you demons of special mission who have evolved
your world on the road to full capitulation to the agents 666.
(vol I page 497)
You shall not compromise My House,
My Church. You shall not gather souls by destroying the principles
of My Church, for you have scattered the sheep. By your fruits
have been made known to the world. It truly cries teardrops from
Heaven. You have been given a warning, and you will act upon it.
(vol I page 499)
JUNE 12, 1976
- My children, recognize the evil about you. Mr. 666, the man
of perdition, a general term, My children, I repeat, they are
the forces of evil now that are working towards the elimination
of the knowledge of the existence of your God. My Son's House,
His Church, is under great attack by satan. Hell and the forces
of hell are loosed upon earth, but they shall not prevail against
My Son's Church. (vol I page 500)
The world is passing through a great
crucible of suffering. As time progresses faster and faster and
the hourglass runs faster and faster. My children, you will see
your world progress into a form of total madness, for sin, My
child, is surely insanity. Sin has become a way of life in your
country and many countries; I shall say, My child, most nations
throughout your world now have accepted the rule of satan. Woe,
woe, woe to the inhabitants of the earth! When the world and My
Son's Church becomes as one, know that the end is near and at
hand. (vol I page 500,501)
In My Son's Church it is becoming
a House divided. United you shall stand, and divided you shall
fall! And why are you becoming divided? Poor leadership, My children,
poor example, and not enough prayers! ..............My children,
you must pray much for Our Vicar, Pope Paul. He is truly a prisoner
in his home, his Church. Woe, woe to those pastors who sit with
him at the table and then produce the knife behind his back. (vol
I page 501)
JUNE 18, 1976
- In your search for peace and brotherhood, you are building another
religion, My children. It is a false religion of humanism and
modernism. How many warnings were given to you in the past, warnings
against these forces, the forces sent out from hell! You pastors,
who have rejected Michael as the guardian of the Faith and My
Son's House, you must return him in prayer and visual sight, his
monuments, his statues to My Son's House, Church. (vol I page
505)
JUNE 24, 1976
- I give fair warning to all that your pursuit of humanism and
modernism shall send many from My Church upon your earth. My Son
has had His heart torn anew by the many who have cast aside His
teachings, who seek to destroy the foundation of His Church, My
Son. There are many Judas's in His House! It truly rains teardrops
from Heaven. (vol I page 507)
JULY 15, 1976
- I cannot promise you at this time a major change in your present
struggle to retain My Church. You must all approach the days ahead
with the knowledge that it is deemed by the Eternal Father that
all mankind shall be tested and tried in a crucible of suffering.
The sheep shall be separated from the goats, and We shall pull
from the chaff the good kernels, those who will retain and restore
My Church. (vol I page 517)
AUGUST 5, 1976
- Awaken from your slumber, My pastors. The pastures are rich,
but the sheep are growing thin. The greatest responsibility for
the destruction of souls I place upon the shepherds. I give fair
warning to those in command, the highest rank in Rome, I give
fair warning as your God, that Heaven has set a time and an hour
to stop the desecration within My Church. My Mother pleads constantly
for an extension of time to mankind to expiate the sins of man.
(vol I page 520)
AUGUST 21, 1976
- As this battle with the agents of 666 continues, out of fear
and lack of the light, many shall fall into the web of the octopus.
The secret societies, My children, are gaining fast advocates
to undermine and subvert My Son's Church. It will appear, My children,
that satan has gained a great ground, but know that his time is
growing short. It is sad, My children. I cannot explain to you
fully the ways of the Eternal Father. Much must be remain a hidden
secret to you until you come over the veil. (vol I page 525)
My Church is becoming fast the meeting
place of all heretics. My Church, My House upon earth, is being
defiled. Young souls are being sent out into the world to meet
with all manner of evil and contamination. And what of Our leaders?
Parents, do not depend on your leaders. You must, as parents,
now assume full responsibility for the salvation of your children's
souls. (vol I page 527)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976
- O My children, leaders of Our flock, Our pastors, you must spend
more time in voicing out, crying out against the evils that have
invaded your society. You are, in your permissiveness, scattering
Our flock. You are, in your permissiveness, floundering, and the
bark is sinking. I have asked you to keep the bark of Peter afloat,
to bail her out. And how? To return, turn away from your errors.
In your arrogance and pride, can you not strip yourselves of your
pride and turn back and restore My Son's Church? (vol I page 529)
The good books of truth are still
among you. Pray for the light, My children, and be guided so that
you may not fall into error, for man is now creating a church
of man, and it will not be the Church of man, and it will not
be the Church of truth and the light, the Church of My Son, Jesus.
Man is bending His cross to suit his carnal human nature. (vol
I page 530)
No man shall take it upon himself
to change the laws, the commands of your God to satisfy the mere
carnal nature of mankind. I implore you, as a merciful voice from
Heaven, to turn back and restore My Church. I implore you, as
your God, with full knowledge of the punishment that is planned
for the redemption of a generation that has fallen to satan. (vol
I page 531)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976
- I warn you now, My children, that you must turn back and start
again. Do not renew My Church by commending it to satan, by destroying
it. You cannot destroy the foundation. You crumble the walls.
Like rats you are burrowing, O Red Hats into the foundation of
My Church. I say unto you, there is not a man living upon earth
now who hears My voice that shall not face the great trial ahead.
(vol page 533,534)
I, your God, command those who hold
rank In My Church to remove the heretical, excommunicate those
who accept themselves to join secret societies to demolish My
Church. Do no compromise your Faith, My children, for there is
only one direction you will proceed, and that is down. (vol I
page 534)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1976
- My children, My Son, His heart is pierced by the manner in which
many come to His House with disrespect, apathy, and using His
House as a meeting place for all manner of abominations. In due
respect on this night of the feast of the high angels in the Eternal
Kingdom, they demand, and Michael commands, that women must cover
their heads during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. It is not through
custom that this is asked of you. Do not be deluded by satan,
My children. Women must cover their heads in respect for the Sacrifice
of My Son, in respect for all laws of your God and not of man;
for man now, My children, is setting up his own laws, his own
rules, and man shall destroy himself in this manner..............The
foundation is solid, My children. The gates of hell shall not
prevail against My Son's Church. Though those who follow the light
must go through a crucible of suffering for the restoration of
My Son's Church, know, My children, that the eventual victory
is with My Son. (vol I page 537)
The way back is very simple. O shepherds
of Our flock, return to your teachings. Set aside your false pride,
for pride will always come before the fall. It is a simple rule
and lesson given to you by your prophets, the founding fathers
of My Son's Church, chosen by Him. Bring back these rules of discipline.
Do not set upon the world this heavy cross of division in My Son's
Church. Do not experiment. Cast out the heretics. Cast out the
secret societies. Cast out from among you those who have given
themselves to satan. Cast out with excommunication the heretics!
(vol I page 540)
OCTOBER 2, 1976
- My child, the example given by Theresa and all who have given
their lives in vocations, this example must be returned to My
Son's Church. Because you do not pray enough, My children, because
you have given yourselves to sins of the flesh, many wars have
descended upon you, many trials of earthquakes and floods and
great heat have come upon you, My children, there is a most terrible
calamity approaching mankind, and I beg you, as your Mother, to
avoid this, to get down now upon your knees and do penance, atonement
and sacrifice to the Eternal Father who has already been offended
too much. (vol I page 542)
In the Eternal City of Rome, the
Message from Heaven has been made known. Now I admonish you, as
your Mother, to act upon My warnings, My children. There must
be a complete reversal in the manner in which you have set out
to tear asunder My Son's Church and His teachings. In blindness
of heart, you have taken the rules and remade them to suit the
basic carnal nature of mankind. You must bring back the commandments
of your God, as given to you by the prophets, without addition,
without change, and without the rationalization of sin! (vol I
page 543)
Many leaders in your government and
many leaders in My House have fallen into error and grave deception.
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer for your pastors. Pray for
your priests. Know that even they can carry their mitres into
hell! (vol I page 545)
OCTOBER 6, 1976
- There is in the Eternal City of Rome, My child, much error,
confusion, and deception. The plan of those who carry on their
backs the number 5 of communism is to overthrow the rule in the
Eternal City, gain control in politics in a manner to control
the world. They seek to overthrow Rome, these agents of hell and
atheism, atheism, My child; they seek to overthrow Rome and gain
control of the power of the House of My Son throughout the world.
They will subvert it from within, My child................There
are many Judas's in My Son's House now. Better that they call
themselves "reds" and be honest. There are many Judas's
in the Houses of My Son throughout the world, and there are many
who have placed their heads in the clouds. Their minds are befogged
by satan, and their minds are poisoned by satan. They spread error,
confusion, and lies. (vol I page 547,548)
Awaken from your slumber, My pastors,
you have been misled. I repeat the Red Hat has fallen and the
Purple Hat is being misled. I repeat again: You, O Red Hats, you
are burrowing, burrowing into My Church like rodents, seeking
to undermine the foundation of My Church. But I say unto you:
I am your foundation, and you shall not shake Me loose, though
you crumble the walls within My House. We wait with great patience
for your return..........There is much work to be done to return
My House, My Church, to its previous state of dedication, purity,
and holiness. Much that has happened within My House, the direction
was not given by your Vicar, Pope Paul. In arrogance, many Red
Hats have set themselves to set up their own church, and it is
fast becoming one of man and not of your God. There are no angels
directing you in the building The spirit you receive is not of
light, but of darkness in your building. Restore My Church to
its former glory, or I shall set My hand down fast upon you! The
Eternal Father is long-suffering and merciful, but My hand is
growing heavy. (vol I page 550)
NOVEMBER 1, 1976
- These laws were given by your God. These rules were given by
your God; they are not man-made! You in your arrogance, O pastors
who rule within My Son's House, you have rejected the supernatural.
You reject the teachings the very founding fathers of your Church
gave unto you, and you reject them for a modern teaching of satan!
(vol I page 552)
My Son chose, in His earth life,
those who would begin His Church that will last until the end
of time, for the gates of hell shall never prevail against His
Church. Though many shall come with evil in their hearts and plans
of destruction to My Son's Church, I say unto you: You will get
nowhere in your pursuit, for you have set yourselves against your
Almighty God. (vol I page 552,553)
My Mother has cautioned the pastors
in My houses upon earth to remove themselves from this octopus
of evil that is spreading fast throughout your world, the diabolical
plan of satan to destroy My Church. But I say unto you; he is
only permitted this reign of evil for the separation of the sheep
from the goats. It is a manner known only to the Father in Heaven;
the Father in Heaven, a manner in which those who have given themselves
to evil shall continue and fast fling themselves into the abyss.
It is a test of faith for all. You cannot compromise My Church;
you cannot compromise your faith, for you will be lukewarm and
as such, I do not know you, and I will not know you when you come
for your judgment. (vol I page 554)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976
- O My children, keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout
your country and all of the countries of your world. I have warned
you that unless you turn back and restore My Son's House to its
former prominence and in its true purpose of the salvation of
souls; unless you restore the basic traditions and truth of My
Son's House, you will receive a just and fitting penance; you
will receive the Ball of Redemption. (vol I page 556)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976
- Live your life, My children, day by day as though the end were
at hand. You will not be caught unawares if you remain with Me
in My Houses throughout the world. You have nothing to fear but
fear itself, My children. The Message from Heaven has not been
given to you to promote fear in your hearts but to bring to you
the reality of what is to come upon mankind. It is in this manner
that We have separated and are separating the sheep from the goats.
Those who will be saved will be counted in the few, My children.
............Give charity of heart in action to your brothers and
sisters, but do not be deluded, My children, into comparing and
bringing a comparison of charity and humanism together. When the
world and My House, My Church, become as one, you will know that
the end is at hand, My children. Recognize the signs of your times
and act upon them. (vol I page 559)
NOVEMBER 22, 1976
- O Pastors in My Son's House, how many times must I warn you
of the dangers of your innovations, the dangers of your experimenting
in My Son's House? You will not convert, you will not return Our
straying sheep with your improvisations................You must
return discipline to My Son's House. This discipline must start
with the rulers in My Son's House. ................What manner
of dereliction do We hear in a form of music that takes the hearts
and minds of Our children from prayer? My Son's House, His Church,
is a house of prayer to the Eternal Father through My Son. You
are making it a meeting place and a hall of gathering for all
of the demons loosed upon your world. Slowly My Son's House is
being changed into a church of man until all vestige of recognition
will be removed from it. (vol I page 560)
My Son, His Heart is torn asunder
by the representatives in the priesthood who now are Judas's in
His own House. They consort with the enemies of your God. In the
manner of humanism and modernism and ecumenism that has been designed
from hell, man now is plunging fast into making ready the full
capitulation of My Son's Church and the world under a dictatorship
of evil. When the world and My Son's Church becomes as one, when
the evil men of the cross have sought to destroy My Son within
His own House, know that the end is near at hand. I say unto you
as your Mother, as you sow so shall you reap! (vol I page 561)
The world is in great chaos, My child,
My House is becoming a den of iniquity for many. Sad that those
whom I have given the grace to represent Me are taking their leadership
as tools, tools that are now being designed for conquest of souls
by satan. (vol I page 562)
DECEMBER 7, 1976
- Those who have been given the rule within My Son's House are
using their knowledge to twist and pervert the teachings of the
peoples. What manner of church are you building now, O mankind,
as you fast plunge to your destruction? A church of man that will
have no resemblance to the Church that My Son left for you! (vol
I page 565)
The conduct of women during the Holy
Sacrifice of the Mass shall be one of silence. No woman shall
speak out during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. Women must wear
head coverings when they enter the House of God. The House of
God is a place of prayer, and not a meeting place or dance hall.
No woman shall speak from the pulpit. No woman shall enter the
ministry.........There are many abominations, My child, being
committed within My Son's House. Many say it is not the little
things that count, but O My children, these little things are
adding up fast. They will culminate in a vast explosion and a
separation in My Son's House..........We do not wish division
in My Son's House. United your will stand, and divided you will
fall. (vol I page 567)
My children, listen well to the direction
of My Mother. My Mother has gone throughout your world through
countless eras of earth-time crying out in a voice coming from
the very depths of Her Mother's heart to you, Her children, to
turn from your present course that is setting you onto your own
destruction. When the world and My Church unite as one, know that
the end has been reached.............You have set the stage now
for the full capitulation of My House by the group under the synagogue
of satan. As Judas's, you conspire in disobedience against your
Vicar, Pope Paul VI. Know that there is no honor among thieves
and murderers. And woe to the man who murders the body, but double
woe to the man who destroys the spirit! (vol I page 568)
You will go forward in the days ahead,
retiring from your world that has been given to satan. Do not
allow your parish doors to close, My children. By your example,
unify as a parish group and you will patch the cracks. Do not
lose faith in My Mass; it is valid. Many may distort, but it is
valid. Many may distort, bit it is valid, I say. When a legally-ordained
priest of the Roman Catholic Church conducts this Mass, it is
valid, I say. (vol I page 569)
DECEMBER 24, 1976
- The lessons of your Faith have been given to you for all time
without change. My Son is forever, for God is, God was, and God
always will be. My Son is your God in the Father and the Holy
Ghost. Do not cast aside your knowledge in faith of the Trinity.
Do not cast aside your knowledge in faith of My Son's Divinity.
Do not recrucify My Son upon your earth and in His Church, His
House. You call upon you a heavy hand of punishment from the Eternal
Father............All manner of evil is being condoned with permissiveness
by the pastors in My Son's House. All manner of abominations are
being committed in My Son's House. Clean out the errors, restore
the light within My Son's House, for a Church in darkness wears
a band of death about it...........My children, the forces of
evil are gathering within the Eternal City of Rome. They exercise
great control over the human element, and satan now exercises
great control over the supernatural. The Eternal Father will allow
him his time, as you will be tested as mettle in the fires. Shall
you bend, in your free will, your human free will, shall you bend
the cross and distort it into a cross of mankind? Shall you bend
My Son's Cross? O evil men of the cross, whatever shall become
of you?
Like sheep fast plunging for the
slaughter, you await eternal damnation as you have cast aside
your Faith. You have opened the doors for the entrance of all
manner of heretics and evil in My Son's House. O ye of little
faith, whatever shall become of ye? ...........You must now make
your choice. The time is now! What was to happen in the future
shall be now! The sides are now being divided. My Son's House
is now being divided. Shall you restore it now while you have
time, or shall you accept slaughter within your country; death,
death in such magnitude that there will not be time nor people
to bury your dead? The Ball of Redemption will soon be upon mankind,
and many shall die in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption.
(vol I page 570)
There is a massive web of evil now
fanning out from a nucleus of power. There is a plan now to engulf
your world into a united center of power with a central head of
man, man uniting all nations into a common dictatorship, man seeking
to discard My House and set up one to his own liking and nature.
I allow you to proceed but for a short time............Pastors
in My House, I look upon you and find your wanting. I do not have
to single you out, each and every one, and divide you now on your
merit. You are already dividing yourselves into two camps. There
will be great discord and struggle and trial within My House,
and there will be great discord, struggle, and trial among the
human race.............Turn about and maintain a true renewal
of your spirit, O pastors. I have looked upon you and found you
wanting. You will cleanse My House of the heretics, the errors,
the fallacies, and the liars that you have allowed to enter upon
it. You will cleanse it and set My House straight, or I shall
come among you and send you out of My House into the fires of
eternal damnation. (vol I page 572)
DECEMBER 28, 1976
- Michael is the guardian of the Faith, of My Church, must be
returned! You have cast aside your guardian and opened My doors
to all manner of heretics and liars! You must not accept the word
of a communist, for they are not of your God but they are followers
of darkness. (vol I page 577)
My Mother has given you My way. It
is a simple road that must be followed. The rules have been given
to you that must not be changed, as you cater to the basic carnal
nature of man, a generation that has fallen! You will not make
changes within My House for you have dispersed My sheep. You will
restore My House to its former glory! Strip your hearts of your
pride! Recognize your errors and restore My House!..................I
say this to you for your Creator, as your God; restore My House
or I shall come down and restore it Myself with a firm hand! And
shall you stand before Me, O Pastors, and say that your teachings
have been pure in My sight? I shall take you and spit you out
as spittle into the fires of eternal damnation! Vermin that came
out of the flowers! (vol I page 578)
DECEMBER 31, 1976
- Arrogance and pride has made man close his eyes and become blind
to what is happening. Because of his sin, he has been allowed
to be blinded. Satan gathers his army of souls, fallen souls,
lukewarm souls, and man of price, to bring about the downfall
of My House, My Church. But I say unto you, as your God: The gates
of hell shall not open wide enough and empty fast enough to destroy
My Church. (vol I page 580)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977
- There are many novelties, there are many abominations and offenses
being committed in My Son's Houses throughout the world. Man has
given himself to experimentation and humanism, and man has not
learned from his past or listened to his past Vicars, the Popes
of old, who warned of the approach of heresy and modernism. You
were given the measures to be guided by to prevent the entrance
of the antichrist into your world and into My Son's Church. But
man of God, followers of the cross, you cast the cross down and
stomp upon it! (vol II page 19)
It will do nothing constructive,
at this time, to expound upon you, to you, the names of those
who have caused the greatest chaos in My House, My Church. Far
be it from any human to set a judgment upon another, for those
who have been given the power to destroy souls within My House
shall receive a judgment beyond any human words to describe, or
feelings to understand. (vol II page 20)
My children, there are all manners
of heretics in My House, a delusion of uniting all within My House.
It is an error, and it will bring the shutting of many doors of
My House. ..............You cannot change My House so that man
will accept it in his liking. You must change man to be acceptable
to his God. No man is above the Eternal Father. He permits you
to go upon your way so that your final destructive act will turn
about and send you deep down into the abyss. (vol II page 21)
FEBRUARY 10, 1977
- We ask you from Heaven not leave, not create a schism from your
main body in Rome. You must remain within My Son's Church and
pray a constant vigilance of prayer. Satan and his agents have
entered in full battle upon My Son's Church. Satan has entered
into the highest ranks within My Son's Church and the world. He
will manipulate powers, provincials, until he brings about a great
Chastisement, because man will not listen and mend his ways. (vol
II page 23)
MARCH 18, 1977
- - My children, you must speak out about the evils that are allowed
to be perpetrated in My Son's House. All manners of abominations
are taking place. Your country and many nations of the world have
given themselves over to sexuality and perversion. Sin has become
a way of life among you. (vol II page 26)
O My children, pray much! We do not
want to see a division in My Son's House. The Roman Catholic Church
must remain one! But this does not mean, as the church of man
states, you will bring all manner of heretics and separated brethren
in. No, My children, that is an error, a delusion from satan.
You cannot change My Son's House and bring these in and change
for them! They must change and come back to the original rule
give by My Son and those who were with Him in the building of
the foundation..................I repeat, My child and My children:
Separated brethren must change. They have protested in the past;
they have taken themselves away from the truth and this one true
Church. They must reject the errors they have made in the past
and come back and start again. They cannot bring their errors
into My Son's House...................You are opening the doors
now for all manner of heretics, separated brethren. They do not
come to unite in good spirit and heart; they come to take over.
They seek to change, O pastors, who are being deluded. And what
do I see in My Son's House but separated brethren upon His pulpit!
Even from the temples, the synagogues of satan, upon His pulpit!
And for what? (vol II page 28)
APRIL 2, 1977
- We see a church of man being built, a church that has no angels
guiding it, a church that is made, as the true Church of My Son
is being chipped away at, undermined by My Son's own priests!
How dare you debase My Son's heritage by allowing all evil to
be condoned in His Church! (vol II page 31)
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer,
My children. Penance, atonement and sacrifice I beg of you. Be
examples of piety and purity, My children. There is not much holiness
left in My Son's House. Do not leave My Son's House. The foundation
is strong, though the walls are cracking. Won't you help patch
these cracks?..........The gates of hell shall never be triumphant
against My Son's House. Persevere and you will win your crown.
The separation of the sheep and the goats will continue as evil
accelerates...........Children of the world starving for the light
and the truth, I am the Way. I am the Light, and My Church is
the light for mankind now, even though My own pastors have darkened
it by their actions and their avarice and their greed and their
vanity and pride! Know that when they have given over My Church
to the world, and as satan deludes them to unite all into a one-world
religion and a one-world government you are enslaved and it is
the end! (vol II page 32)
APRIL 9, 1977
- My children, what manner of abomination is being committed in
My Son's House? Can you not cry with Him, suffer with Him on His
way to the cross? No! Demons have entered into My Son's House.
They claim the human body to use them to defile My Son's House
until evil men of the cross are setting a church up, now, a church
of man with no angels guiding them, with no supernatural intervention
from Heaven guiding them This church of man shall be built on
naturalism, modernism, and humanism............We look upon you,
My children, and find that you are consorting with astrologers,
sorcerers, paganism, even bringing this way of life into My Son's
Church! Like pagans, you dance down the aisles during the Holy
Sacrifice! Like pagans you come undressed, My children, to the
Holy Sacrifice! You conduct yourselves without respect or love.
(vol II page 35)
MAY 14, 1977
- Do not be deluded, My children, by the agents of satan among
you in human form who preach doctrines of devils. The truth has
been given to mankind through the ages. The Holy Roman Catholic
Church of My Son will stand. The members shall be reduced to few.
Only a remnant, My child, shall carry the banner Faithful and
True. But the gates of hell shall fight a heavy battle against
My Son's Church, but they shall not succeed. (vol II page 39)
My House has become a meeting ground
of robbers and thieves, self-seeking, instruments of satan. Many
are selling their souls to get to the head. And what do they gain?
What does it matter if you gain all the treasures that the earth
has to give you, for you come over the veil with nothing. You
will go out as you came in, bare! But those who are of knowledge
prepare to come over the veil, and they gather as ransom for their
souls the graces I have given knowledge to you of, graces that
you reject! I say unto you: Heaven, Paradise was created for all
who seek it, but many are called, but few are chosen.................The
Eternal Father waits for you to reverse your ways. The Eternal
Father waits for you to restore My House to its former glory.
Stop running about seeking another master, while you pile up riches
of gold and silver that shall melt in the firmaments; while you
gather power, and what power do you have but for the destruction
of mankind?................My children, parents of the young,
remember: You have nothing to gain but sorrow if you neglect the
rearing of your children in sanctity and holiness. Do not expect
to find this holiness in My House now, My children, but do not
run away. Stay and fight! Retain My Church! The numbers will be
reduced to the few, but better, My children, there is quality
of few instead of quantity with nothing. (vol II page 41)
MAY 28, 1977
- While man cries peace he goes farther from peace. Peace, love
and brotherhood! Words, I say unto you! Lip-service from mankind!
That is all! What comes from the heart is darkness and evil! Even
in the hearts of men in the highest places in My Church, they
conspire with enemies of their God. The faith is weak. (vol II
page 48,49)
MAY 30, 1977
- My children, you will pray for your priests, your clergy, but
do not be fooled by those who have fouled their habits. Restore
My Son's Church to its former glory. My children, do not abandon
your children now when they need you. (vol I page 50)
JUNE 4, 1977
- Apathy among the clergy have closed the doors to My Son's Houses!
Please, My children, awaken from your slumber and see the road
that you have set yourselves upon by sin and avarice and pride!
Turn back now! I plead to you as your Mother: Turn back now as
the time is growing short!!! (vol II page 54)
JUNE 16, 1977
- Satan, the master of deceit and the prince of darkness, has
entered into the highest places of My Son's Church, and into the
highest places of the governors of all the earth's kingdoms until
those who make the rules for nations have given over the nations
to abomination. (vol I page 57)
My Church, My House upon earth, shall
not crumble by the onslaught of satan! It will be a good and just
battleground allowed by the Eternal Father for separation of the
wheat from the chaff. The harvest shall be great, and all that
is rotten shall fall! And the chaff shall be gathered and cast
into the fires! The numbers to be saved shall be counted in the
few, not better, My children, a few with quality than quantity
with nothingness. (vol II page 58)
JULY 15, 1977
- All who have received the Holy Spirit have consecrated hands.
And I say unto you none but legally ordained priests in My House
shall bring My Body to the multitudes! No woman shall stand in
the Holy Place! No woman shall vie or compete for ruler ship in
My House. I say unto you, you must go back and read the commandments
of the Eternal Father; you must go back and read the rules that
Paul gave you. You cast aside and you write another book, a bible,
a tome; you write it to suit your own basic, carnal, human nature.
The way has been given to you in
the past, and the way does not change. It is a simple way. The
rules have been given, and you change them for what? Were they
imperfect? Have you considered the Eternal Father to be in error?
I say unto you, you blaspheme in your consecration. I say unto
you, you will return My House to the former status of honor, glory,
discipline. You must, as shepherds, give a firm example of holiness..................There
was great unity in My House upon earth, but man became unpious,
unholy, and with itching ears he has listened to doctrines set
forth by demons. Now, My shepherds, you will close your ears to
your modernists and those who seek change and who will build a
church of man. No, I say unto you, this shall not be tolerated
by the Eternal Father! You are permitted a long rule for reason.
The Eternal Father hopes, in His merciful heart, that you will
come out of your slumber and see the light. You are walking in
darkness............My children, you will all recognize the faces
of evil. Satan has entered into the highest ranks of My Church.
Pray now for your priests, your bishops, your cardinals, your
clergy. Many prayers are needed, for many are on, now, the road
to perdition and taking many others with them. (vol II page 65)
My children, do not cast aside your
sacramentals. They are your armor in the days ahead. Do not desert
My Church. Do not judge it by the man who has stood there in ignorance
or in pride and changed it until it will almost be unrecognizable.
I am still with you, My children. Do not leave. You must stay
and fight. In this manner, My children, shall the sheep be separated
from the goats. It is a form of cleansing. (vol II page 66)
JULY 25, 1977
- My children, I have repeated over and over that if you return
to the rule and discipline as given by My Son, you must now have
a rule of the cross and not of man. You must read the Bible and
act upon it. Cast not aside the teachings of the founders of My
Son's Church. Saint Paul, you revile and deride him. You cast
him aside, and why? So that you can write and rewrite the words
of your God to suit your own basic carnal human natures. (vol
II page 68)
My children, My heart bleeds; I cry
bitter tears to see the manner in which mankind has reduced My
Son's House of worship and adoration to a meeting place of all
manner of demons and abomination, defilement of My Son's eternal
Body and Blood. .............My children, the gates of hell shall
not prevail against My Son's House. My Son is always with you.
If you are seeking Him, He shall not abandon you, My little children.
Ask and you will be given the way; believe and you will find the
light. .........My children, unless you restore My Son's House
to its former glory, with holiness and piety, discipline and dedication,
the doors will close, for a House in darkness wears a band of
death about it. (vol II page 69)
Many of My clergy are on the road
to perdition and taking many trusting souls with them. It is a
knife in My Heart that satan has been allowed to enter into My
Church, but now My Mother has been given, as a Mediatrix between
God and man, the knowledge and power from Heaven to gather Our
armies of little saints upon earth. And it will be these people,
humble, of little means, but with full hearts, who will go forward
and restore My Church............Pious X: Keep the Faith. Modernism
must be cast out. Heretics must be set loose, but they cannot
be retained. My children, you must listen while there is time.
Restore the House of your God. Do not defile and commit abominations
in the House of your God much longer, for you have been tested,
and all that is rotten shall be cast out. (vol II page 70)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977
- My children, your world has cast aside the knowledge, the existence
of the supernatural. Your leaders and even those pastors in My
Son's House have laughed at the supernatural. They cast Michael
out of My Son's Church, and now satan is in His Church! It is
satan now who rules within My Son's Church and the world. He has
been given his time now to claim his own., All that is rotten
shall fall. The vinedresser, My Son, shall shake the vine, and
all that is rotten shall fall! (vol II page 83)
You must chase satan from My Son's
Church. You must do everything in your human nature to dispel
him from My Son's Church and your country and the countries of
earth. It is to your advantage to listen and act upon My counsel,
or you will cry bitter tears of regret when it is too late! (vol
II page 84)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1977
- I accept, with a stricken heart, the abominations that are being
committed in My House. Satan was allowed to enter. Man chose to
take Michael, the guardian of Faith, from My House; and the doors
then swung wide open to admit the prince of darkness and his realm
of corruption and evil...............My children, satan has entered
into the highest places of government and the highest positions
in My Church. They too will feel the sword. (vol II page 89)
OCTOBER 1, 1977
- Because of the major role the city of New York plays in the
world governments and the governing of your nation, the United
States, My child, it is for this reason that satan chose that
area for his start to bring into your country a full overthrow
of Christian belief. It is his endeavor now to replace the Church
of My Son with the church of satan. (vol II page 90)
Do not be fooled by their outward
appearance of piousness and holiness, for many of them will come
as angels of light, but they have ravenous hearts of wolves. They
are the wolves in sheep's garments, and sad to say, My children,
I find many of these are in My House, My Church upon earth.........Throughout
the earth-years of time, I have given direction, through the Holy
Spirit, for the course of My Church, but man, as in the time of
Lucifer in Heaven, man in power, has decided to take it upon himself
to go above His Creator, seeking to create life, seeking to accept
the knowledge of life and use it to destroy, until the world has
created a force of executioners from hell...........There will
be degradation, for the morals of your country are being destroyed.
There will be no honor, for there is no honor among thieves; and
there are thieves who have stolen into My House, My Church. They
are robbers, seeking to destroy My children. (vol II page 91)
I cannot at this time give you the
full import of the existence of this web of evil throughout the
world. It is the major plan of satan to bring about a complete
one world government and a one world religion. And it will not
be of My Son. It will be a church of man based on humanism, modernism,
and satanism. O My children, if I could only open the doors of
the world and set your eyes to see what We see now being perpetrated
in My Son's Houses throughout the world! It is no wonder that
I cry bitter tears of pity, for you know not what you do, and
you know not what the future holds for you!...............Already,
in many of My Son's Churches, side by side, are they sacrificing
My Son, and also satan sacrifices unwilling victims to his black
mass. My children, you must fight to retain the divinity of My
Son, and not have satan encroach upon it. It is a war far worse
than man has ever seen in history. These are the days spoken of
and written of by the prophets of old. (vol II page 90)
OCTOBER 6, 1977
- Charity has grown cold in the hearts of most. And those who
profess a vocation in the clergy have become neither lukewarm
nor active, but they go downstream to their destruction like ducks,
neither caring whether the abominations destroy souls in My House.
They call forth the heavy hand of the Father upon them! All manners
of violations to all humanism and dignity is taking place even
within the portals of My Church, violations against sanctity.
(vol II page 94)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977
- My children, understand: You cannot have two masters. One you
will love and the other you will hate. Has My Son become now hated
in your world, one to be mocked and scorned anew? Has My Son's
Church met now with a new ruler? Have you torn down My Son's Church
and erected one of man? Yes, I say unto you: Your time is short.
(vol II page 96)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977
- My child, My heart is greatly saddened by the evil that has
entered into the hearts of the priest of My Son's Church upon
earth. I have asked and begged those who have the knowledge and
light to go forward in prayer, in charity of heart, giving the
Message from Heaven to all, including the priests in My Son's
House. And now I cry bitter tears of remorse, because now satan
has full control of My Son's House. The gauge was metered by the
desecration being committed now to My Son's Body. (vol II page
100,101)
My heart is torn, My children, at
the manner in which you do honor to My Son in His House! The angels
demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice of My Son.
A woman must have her head covered. It is the command of the angels
who are present at the Holy Sacrifice. All flesh and nakedness
shall burn with the Ball of Redemption. Cover your bodies! They
are temples of the Holy Ghost! (vol II page 101)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977
- One day, My Church shall be restored to its former glory. The
light of truth shall return. But, My children, it will be a great
battle before that day. We are lining up now the armies of light,
and satan has gathered his agents, the army of darkness. You will
all be given the opportunity to choose your side. Vol II page
107)
DECEMBER 7, 1977
- I cry bitter tears of sorrow. I ask all My children to save
My Son's House, His Church upon earth. And how may this be accomplished?
By prayer, My children; by good example; constructive criticism.
You cannot give full confidence to satan or his agents. You cannot
expect another to take your part in this battle of the spirits.
Each and every one of conscionable age must now go forward as
a bearer of truth and light. These days, My children are the days
that had been spoken of and written of by the prophets of old.
(vol II page 109)
The practice of the black mass, abominations,
corruption being promoted even within your teaching institutions
and this does not mean that I can look upon the corruption in
My House, My Church, and condone it with permissiveness, I say
unto you, O pastors, you will awaken from your slumber now, for
your sheep are straying. A House, a church in darkness, wears
a band of death about it! All that is rotten shall fall from the
vine; for I, your God, shall shake the vine, for I am the vinedresser.
(vol II page 110)
DECEMBER 31, 1977
- There are secret societies now upon earth. They are all under
the direction of satan. I command you as the Eternal Father commands
you, and the Spirit of Light, I command you as your God that you
shall not worship false idols and gods, such as gods of nature.
I command you as your God to rid those who create the evil and
the destruction of souls, to rid them from My House, My Church.
All that is rotten will fall. ............The present leaders
of My Church in the city of Rome, in your arrogance you have set
up My Church without honor, without holiness! In the name of peace
and brotherhood, you have whittled away the foundation. I am the
foundation! You must now rebuild My Church, for a church in darkness
wears a band of death about it. I say unto you: It is better that
there are few with quality than quantity with nothingness. (vol
II page 113)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978
- My children, I repeat: Do not leave your parish church but remain
as an example. The Eucharist, My Son, is always with you. Comfort
Him, as His heart is torn by the many abominations being committed
in His House and by many of His clergy. (vol II page 117)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978
- In the diabolical conspiracy, worldwide now, against My Son
and His Church, there are leaders, and these leaders reach into
the youth of your nation with a diabolical plan from satan. Man
has paganized himself, and he seeks to set up new idols to worship.
(vol II page 120)
MARCH 15, 1978
- My children, I repeat again: You must not abandon your parish
churches. We do not want the doors to shut. You must remain there
and suffer with My Son and set a good example. The enemies of
your God, in many forms, with many names, go about the world now
with a major plan of destruction for My Son's Church. (vol II
page 127)
The greatest strength for parents
in your so-called modern civilization is the knowledge that the
eventual triumph over this evil will be for Heaven. Even My Church
shall come out of the conflagration renewed. (vol II page 128)
MARCH 18, 1978
- We will not tolerate division in My Church. Satan knows to divide
is to conquer. The captains always remain upon the ship, even
when it is sinking. The strong, those with faith, shall bail it
out, the ship; keep it afloat until help arrives from Heaven.
................All manner of heretics and unbelievers seek to
enter My House, My Church upon earth. You must not compromise
the Faith, for you will not win souls by lowering the standards.
I gave you through the prophets the rule, the way, for I am the
way, the truth and the light! ..........O you hypocrites in My
House, you who teach fallacy, errors and lies, whatever shall
become of you? Shall I abandon you to your sin? If I abandon you,
you will gain a reprobate sense, and you shall be destroyed in
your folly. (vol I page 132)
You have been given many warnings
in the past, and you are receiving a final warning to return My
Church to its former glory. Experimentation must stop. Humanism
and modernism is a creation of satan in My House! A delusion has
been set upon you. Your heads are out in the clouds, fogged. You
are like ducks floating fast downstream to the brink, the edge.
You are playing follow the leader. It is a game of destruction.
Turn back now while there is time! (vol II page 133)
APRIL 1, 1978
- My children, My Son's Church is passing through a terrible crisis.
Please do not abandon it in these days of darkness, but stay and
fight with prayers, good deeds, works of mercy and good example.
(vol II page 138)
MAY 3, 1978
- There will be gnashing of teeth and much woe set upon the earth
by 666, satan and his consorts. Protect your families, your children.
Eat of the Bread of Life. Do not allow My Church to close. I repeat,
a church in darkness wears a band of death about it. But you can
save My Church by your prayers and your efforts. (vol II page
144)
MAY 13, 1978
- My child, they converse of the secret that I gave at Fatima.
It is a simple explanation. It could not be fully revealed because
of the drastic nature of My message. How I warned and warned that
satan would enter into the highest realms of the Hierarchy in
Rome. The Third Secret, My child, is that satan would enter into
My Son's Church. vol II page 146)
See, My child and My children, the
sufferings inflicted anew upon My Son. These sufferings are increasing
daily by the blasphemy and the abominations being committed in
His House upon earth, His Church. His divine presence has been
sullied. Pray, My children, for your brothers and sisters who
are in deep spiritual darkness. Pray, for hell is fast filling
up and purgatory is overflowing with souls. So few are entering
into the Kingdom without long stays in purgatory. Pray a constant
vigilance of prayer, My children.(vol II page 147)
Do not expect your clergy now to
save your children and your families. It is your responsibility
now. Satan is in My Son's Church. Michael was cast out. And now
satan has free rein to roam. (vol II page 148)
MAY 20, 1978
- There are many deceptions taking place among you, and one being
the falsification of the manner of the salvation of souls. When
I was upon earth, I established the rules and I gave you My Church,
My House. However now I watch as many have gone forward with itching
ears and novelty, and they are setting upon the world a new religion.
Though their hearts may have started with good intent this novelty
and experimentation. My children, I assure you, what you are calling
Pentecostals and calling down upon you the 'Spirit' It is a devious
and insidious evil created by satan to take away from you the
knowledge and the need for the institutionalized Church. (vol
II page 150)
My children, you must understand
that many are called but few are chosen. I cry from this knowledge,
for it is My purpose to come to you as your Mother to save all
of Our children,. But this has never come to a reality because,
My children, many have allowed their hearts to become hardened.
Their ears are closed, and they only open their ears to listen
to all the heresy, to all of the modernism and humanistic tendencies,
even coming to them from their teachers, even in My Son's Church,
His House upon earth. (vol II page 152)
MAY 27, 1978
- My Son is the door to His Church. Unless people enter this door
to visit with My Son, they shall not receive a grace. Because
many who enter are thieves and robbers, not only seeking to destroy
souls, to steal souls from the Eternal Father for satan, but they
seek after worldly treasures, My Son's House is becoming a den
of thieves. My Son calls to you as His faithful and true disciples
to rid His House of these thieves who despoil His Body. ...........I
have visited My Son's House seeing all of the abominations being
committed in the name of peace, love and brotherhood, a delusion
and deception upon mankind from satan, no love or peace shall
come to mankind unless he places his God first and above all men
or man. (vol II page 152)
My children, your doctrines of faith
have been given to you, the dogmas of your religion, and you cannot
change them without bringing destruction upon yourself and My
Son's Church.........Many victim souls are being offered to slow
the disintegration of My Church in Rome. I say disintegration,
because the red armies are gathering within the portals. As My
Mother has counseled you, My children, many have sold their souls
to get to the head. How many times have I shouted warnings to
My Hierarchy. How many times has My Mother passed among you, crying
out to you, crying from the rooftops. My children, She has shouted,
for the day is upon you now and the darkness is growing deeper,
darkness of the spirit...........(vol II page 153)
The way, a simple way, was given
to mankind. I gave the keys to the pastors of My Church, My House
upon earth, and these keys have been tarnished through greed and
avarice and the lust for power. My House now is producing bad
fruit, and I shall soon shake the tree. All that is rotten shall
fall! Remember, My children, the world and My Church shall not
be as one. Conform and you will die on the vine! ...............I
ask you this: Do not abandon My House, My Church. Remain in your
parishes as an example. If you unify against evil you can vanquish
this evil! If you run away, you leave My Church open to thieves
and robbers! Shall you deny to your brothers and sisters the opportunity
to enrich their souls with My Body and Blood? The parish church
must remain open. I shall be there with you, though man is desecrating
in his rituals. I shall be there always with you. (vol II page
154)
MAY 30, 1978
- Because as a generation you have given yourselves over to sin
and abominations even reaching into the House, the Church of My
Son, you bring upon yourselves a just punishment. All who remain
of well spirit will have nothing to fear. They will go through
the approaching trials with great confidence and love for My Son.
..........The Church of My Son, that is being stripped of all
holiness, shall emerge with the world and the world's leaders,
to be directed for a short time by satan. (vol II page 155)
My children, as parents you must
now protect your children. My Son's House, His Church, is being
stripped of all holiness, the destruction of its doctrine, tradition,
paving the way for the ultimate goal of those in the power of
satan to destroy My Son's Church by creating a church of man.
They are rebuilding slowly while awaiting the next conclave. They
are preparing the way for the destruction of all mankind, for
when the Church and the world become as one, you will know that
the end has come for mankind. (vol II page 156)
My Church, My House upon earth, is
undergoing a great crisis; however no evil shall ever be triumphant,
it is a time of testing for all mankind, and all who have developed
itching ears, adopting new doctrines and ways that are akin to
modernism shall find themselves fast plunging into error and deceit
and death. The wages of all sin is death. My children, pray for
your bishops and your cardinals. Be a good example to all. I ask
you to remain in your parish churches for reason. Accept the cross,
the suffering that you must persevere in. ........... I do not
want new churches arising all over the land and throughout the
world, for united you can stand, but divide and you will truly
fall! Satan wished division within My House...........My children,
you will pray again, making your life a constant time of prayer.
There is not time to seek worldly pursuits and glory and power
and riches. They will all be nothing soon. Your greatest strength
shall be your Faith. For many shall face a great test, wishing
for death in the turmoil ahead. (vol II page 158)
JUNE 10, 1978
- I ask you again not to abandon your parish churches. You will
maintain the papacy in Rome. I tell you anew that 666 now is in
Rome. Do not judge My Son's Church by His pastors in their human
nature they can err, however, as legitimate legally ordained Roman
Catholic priests they will bring My Son to you if you come seeking
Him at the tabernacles of the world. The Mass is valid, I say
unto you! (vol II page 163)
JUNE 18, 1978
- My children, in the past My Church, My people have gone through
crucibles of suffering, but I say unto you; My House, My Church
upon earth is passing through a trial far greater than any in
past history. Lucifer and his agents now are working with diligence
and are most successful at this moment in their striving to topple
the seat of Peter and to place in Rome a pope that is the anti-pope
of history. (vol II page 168)
JULY 15, 1978
- I have asked you, My suffering little children, to remain in
your parish churches. Pray and be an example. Do not abandon My
Son's Houses in your district. For while the doors are open, and
My Son is the door though thieves have entered and robbers,, My
Son is the door, and if you come through that door you will be
received with the light. (vol II page 170)
JULY 25, 1978
- In your well meaning actions of opening My Son's Church to all
without conversion, you have allowed yourself to associate with
heretics and unbelievers, in this manner you are compromising
your Faith. My children, recognize what is happening now in My
Son's Church. (vol II page 173)
Parents must protect their children
now. Do not depend even upon your clergy to safeguard your children's
souls. Satan now is doing great battle in My Son's House upon
earth. He shall not be victorious; however, it is a test now for
all mankind. You will be guided by reading the Bible, the Book
of Life. And I repeat again for all mankind to hear: Conform to
the world and its sin and you will die on the vine! (vol II page
174)
The clergy upon earth, in all denominations,
cannot give themselves over for experimentation, change with errors.
For many souls shall be lost to Heaven. Clergy in My Son's House
in Rome, under the direction of the Seat of Peter, you must recognize
that the world is closing in upon you, and you will die on the
vine if you conform with it............Convert the unbeliever.
All Heaven cries for conversion. Do not go forward with the delusion
any longer that you will bring souls into My Son's House, His
Church, by change. You will find you will lose souls, for a Church
in darkness wears a band of death about it. ............The human
nature of man is corruptible, and when this corruption flows into
the soul, the spirit, then what shall a man do but become a stooge,
an agent of hell. Many, for the love of power and money, have
given themselves over to being Judas's in My Church, My House.
No man is hidden from the eyes of the Eternal Father, for He has
counted each hair on your head. .............My children, continue
to follow the counsel of My Mother. All of the saints and the
angels of Heaven shall come with you to aid you in this war of
the spirits. Soon My clergy must make a decision; shall they build
now a church of man and replace My House upon earth. No angels
are guiding their movements. No angels shall rescue them from
the pits of hell. Awaken, My clergy, for your heads are in the
clouds! (vol II page 175)
AUGUST 5, 1978
- Lucifer is the prince of darkness and the father of all heresy
and liars. I say this with great anguish, for Lucifer has entered
into My Church, My Household. The battle is great upon earth,
and when the battle reaches into My Church, it will be a testing
ground for all of the earth and the world. For when My Church
and the world become one, know that the end is at hand. (vol II
page 179)
AUGUST 14, 1978
- O My children, through countless earth-years I counseled you
to prepare My Son's House, His Church upon earth, for this fight
with Lucifer. From the beginning of man's creation by the Eternal
Father, the day was to come for this battle of the spirits. The
Eternal Father has a plan for all mankind. However, man must now
do full battle with the supernatural world of satan, who is Lucifer
and his agents............ O My children, what will happen in
Rome shall be meted to mankind for the darkness of spirit that
has entered upon My Son's House, His Church, and into the heart
of mankind. (vol II page 180)
AUGUST 19, 1978
- My children, My Son's Church is being fired upon by satan. As
I warned you in the past, Lucifer has entered My Son's House,
His Church, to do battle now, as he knows he has been given but
a short time to work his will among mankind, as he is the prince
of darkness and the prince of the world now. Each and every soul
placed upon earth by the Eternal Father has been given a mission
to fight Lucifer and his agents and return victorious to Heaven
from whence the Eternal Father has created you. (vol II page 183)
My Son has counseled you, and I repeat
anew: If you conform to the world, you will die on the vine! My
Son is the vine, and you are the branches. The Eternal Father
directs all. A good tree will not promote bad fruit. My children,
understand My counsel. By their fruits are they known. All that
is rotten shall fall. Though they be few in number, My Son's Church
shall stand, as My Son is the foundation..............There are
many who are being misled, led astray. Remember, My children,
the road to hell is often paved by good intentions. You must not
accomplish, or try to accomplish, anything in relation to movements
within My Son's Church now, without prayer and direct counsel
from Heaven, for Lucifer is waiting to take over the Seat of Peter.
............There will be many manifestations given to those who
have taken over the role as disciples of the latter days for My
Son. The people must now save My Son's Church. This battle upon
earth has been given now to the people, and through the people
shall you bring back My Son's Church to its former position of
holiness, piety and numerous entrances into the vocations. Many
holy priests are needed.............I beg you, pastors in My Son's
House, to wash your garments in suffering and prayer, for you
have sullied them in your quest for worldly power and riches.
You must divest yourself of all self-seeking, and return My Son's
House and gather the sheep into one fold, but not gather them
at the expense of Tradition. (vol II page 184)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978
- In the city of Rome there will be great confusion and trial.
Satan, Lucifer in human form, entered into Rome in the year 1972.
He cut off the rule, the role of the Holy Father, Pope Paul VI.
Lucifer has controlled Rome and continues this control now. And
I tell you, My children, unless you pray and make My council known
to all of the ruling fathers of the Eternal City of Rome, My Son's
Church, His House, will be forced into the catacombs. A great
struggle lies ahead for mankind. The eventual outcome is for good
of all, for this trial in My Son's Church will be a true proving
ground for all the faithful. Many latter day saints shall rise
out of the tribulation....................You must stand forth
as bearers of the light, carriers of the truth. You have been
given by your baptism entrance into the only true religion upon
earth, the Roman Catholic Church under My Son Jesus. Though man
in his arrogance and pride has forgotten His role and His rule,
you must carry it forward. Retain the Faith and the truth in the
hearts of mankind. (vol II page 186)
My child and My children, make it
known to all that the road to Heaven was never easy, but you can
make it much easier upon yourselves and your families if you follow
the rules, if you follow the commandments from the Eternal Father.
The changes that We see taking place in My House and upon earth
are not good, for many souls are falling into hell. And a great
measure of responsibility now is with those who have been called
to the holy orders, who have given themselves to represent Me
upon earth. Shall I say that I have found many Judas's now within
My House? Cannot this situation be changed................There
is only one way that this can be stopped, this evil that has seeped
into My House and into the hearts of all mankind. You must stop
now your seeking for change and novelty. You must restore My Church
to its former glory. Admit your error. Do no conceal this with
pride and arrogance. (vol II page 187)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978
- Pray, My children, a constant vigilance of prayer must be kept
throughout your country and the world. Do not abandon My Son in
His Church. Do not be deluded by those who call the Mass invalid.
My Son is there. He does not want the doors to close in His Houses,
His Church, for He is the door. Though robbers and thieves often
enter, He is still the door. Come and seek Him in His House. You
will not be abandoned, My children. Only the man of sin shall
be given over to a reprobate sense............I warn all bishops
and cardinals that they are deluded in their efforts to bring
about a one-rule under one shepherd. The one shepherd you seek
shall not be man. My Church, My House upon earth, is being torn
asunder by the countless antics of man in rule in Rome. (vol
II page 190)
I do not intend to act as a hammer
upon the heretics who have entered My Church, the deceivers, those
not of the Faith who entered to destroy. My Mother shall direct
this battle. Lucifer and his agents are in Rome now. Do you not
know what this means? Are you so blinded that you do not know
of the power of Lucifer? My children, My pastors, awaken from
your slumber! While you sleep the sheep have run away. Save your
own souls, for you have brought scandal into My Church. (vol II
page 191)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978
- Do not forget that St, Michael has been removed for your churches
for reason. Michael is the guardian of the Faith. He must be returned
to My Son's Church for protection. (vol II page 194)
My child and My children, I am not
intending to go through a long discourse with you on the present
state of My Church in Rome. Suffice it to say that 666, Lucifer
and his agents, will make a concerted effort to dethrone the
present Vicar. In his plan, the plan of Lucifer, he seeks
to unite My Church with the world, and this I shall not permit.
(vol II page 195)
You are blinded, My Hierarchy. You
seek to bring all into My Church, but this must be by conversion.
You are allowing all manner of heretics and the antichrist forces
to enter among you. You are being deceived. Awaken from your slumber...............A
great battle is taking place now within My Church and in all
corners of the earth and countries. If the evil accelerates farther,
it will be necessary for divine intervention, is this what you
want, My children? Can you never learn from your past? Your nation,
My children, the United States and Canada and many nations of
the world - and I shall say now, your nations of earth - have
given themselves over now to paganism and atheism and all manner
of "isms" that spell destruction for mankind. (vol II
page 196)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978
- I ask parents to restore discipline to their homes. I demand
My pastors to restore discipline to My Church upon earth. You
will not convert the masses, but you will set yourselves to be
destroyed by the enemies of God, because you do not pray, because
you do not seek means of mortification. I say unto you, as your
God, in the name of your Creator, that as you sow, so shall you
reap; and many of you are preparing to reap the whirlwind! (vol
II page 203)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978
- Even in My Son's Churches I have watched My children approaching
the Sacred Species, My Son's Body and Blood, His Divinity, being
desecrated by young women, young men, and even middle aged, wearing
satan's emblems. How foolish you are not to recognize the cross
and the sacramentals given by the institutionalized churches,
the Roman Catholic Church of My Son, even though sadly I have
often cried at the many denominations that come from the first
Church of My Son. However, the cross is your salvation, and many
of My children are wearing Lucifer's symbols. You wear a horn
about your neck, and you say it is the Italian horn of plenty.
It is not!! It is the horn of Lucifer! (vol II page 205)
You will alert, as followers of My
Son, Jesus, those in His Church who have fallen asleep, the bishops
and the cardinals. And sad to say, My children, the ugly hand
of communism has reached in to desecrate the Body of My Son in
His own Church. You must remember, as man goes about the world
crying peace, love and brotherhood, he sets up governments liberalizing
the masses, called socialism. And it does not operate under the
true cross of My Son Jesus, but is used as a front to entice like
a spider with his web those unsuspecting souls who are looking
for peace, peace of heart, peace of spirit, which they cannot
find in their present world because the leaders have fallen asleep.
(vol II page 205,206)
You have been given, My children,
these warnings in preparation for the plan of the Luciferians
to take over fully your country and the world. You must act upon
this, I have given your armor to you. You have prayer, you have
My Son. Do not accept false messiahs going throughout the world.
Do not reject the institutionalized Church of My Son, just because
there are some who have lost the way, just because some have entered
into My Son's Church to bring about discredit and destroy from
within. Do not judge My Son's Church by the man and the men who
run it, but remember; My Son is always with you. (vol II page
206)
Do not abandon My Son any longer
by rejecting His Church. Do not judge My Son's Church by man.
The foundation is My Son, Jesus. And though the walls may develop
cracks, the foundation is solid. Will you not remain and patch
these cracks, My children? We do not wish that you break apart
into small groups of discord. No schisms must take place in My
Son's Church. For all who are baptized a Roman Catholic must die
Roman Catholics to enter Heaven. A rejection of the Papacy, a
rejection of the Faith, because of human reasoning shall not be
accepted by the Eternal Father in Heaven. Remain faithful and
true forever unto the end. (vol II page 207)
DECEMBER 7, 1978
- Many are now selling their souls upon earth to get to the head.
Like thirty pieces of silver. I hear the clink of coins being
tossed to sell out My Church. Remember, O pastors, the day shall
come when you shall stand before Me in judgment, and shall you
say to Me that your teaching has been pure in My sight? I will
say unto you: Away from Me, you vipers! As I cast you into the
flames. (vol II page 211)
MAY 23, 1979
- The commandments of the Eternal Father were written in full;
the construction of My Son's Church was directed in full. All
will be found written by the founding fathers of the Church in
the Bible, your Book of life and love. Pastors in My Son's Church,
whatever are you seeking to reform! You had the truth, you had
the light, but with itching ears you are listening to demons.
(vol II page 213)
MAY 23, 1979
- My clergy, you must take yourselves out of the world; you are
secularizing My Church, but you are also demonizing the sheep,
subjecting them to falling into the abyss; because though the
mercy of the Eternal Father is all-knowing, and His Heart is merciful,
many of Our sheep are falling into the abyss because many of My
priests are on the road to perdition, and taking others with them.
O My children, whatever shall become of you! It will take great
strength of Faith to remain true. (vol II page 215)
MAY 26, 1979
- I have asked you all not to abandon My Son's Church, but to
remain; set an example of prayer and holiness. There is too little
holiness now in My Son's Church, and in other denominations upon
the earth. (vol II page 217)
My children, go to your Bishops and
tell them that all Heaven is disturbed, and Our Hearts are torn
by the laxity in attitude to pride and arrogance of the priesthood
in My Son's Church. We ask for you to convert the unbelievers
but not to join them, not to compromise My Son's Church. The reforms
you are promoting will bring your destruction, for the sheep will
leave. ............We ask that all Bishops and Cardinals refrain
from promoting change and reform in My Son's Church. They must
gather the peoples into the church to do honor before the Eucharist.
Unless you eat of the Body of My Son, and drink His Blood, you
shall not have the light in you. (vol II page 218)
JUNE 9, 1979
- You must still in your human nature not become prideful or arrogant.
You must accept the counsel of the true priests who are in My
Church. You cannot and must not break away and form your own groups...........I
have given a procedure from the beginning of the Book of life
and through to the end. You must follow fully the procedure. My
Church will not be subdued though it goes through great trial
now............I do not want you to leave your parish churches.
I want you and counsel you as your God to remain! If you have
any dispute, I ask you for the preservation of your salvation
upon earth, to not cast aside the role of the priesthood as given
through the Apostles, My followers.............I ask you not to
judge another; you may counsel, you may give your viewpoints,
but no violence must be used, and I do not want schism. I do not
want any interference from separated brethren in My Church. They
must be brought back. Convert the unbeliever! You must remain
united with Rome.............The gates of hell shall not prevail
against My Church, for a cleansing will come about and all that
is rotten will fall! And My Church shall be restored to its former
glory! (vol II page 225)
JUNE 18, 1979
-You will all pray for your Holy Father in Rome, Pope John Paul
II. There is a devious and diabolical force now trying to tear
asunder My Son's Church. The laity must now go forward and save
My Son's Church. (vol II page 227)
Keep a constant vigilance of prayer
going throughout your world. Be a good example for those in your
parish church. I ask you not to abandon My Church, but to stay
and fight. We ask not for physical force, but for prayer and example........You
cannot condone what is wrong, but you must act to correct it.
Prayer is one of the greatest weapons now for mankind to use against
the forces of darkness that cover now and enshroud the whole world.
(vol II page 228)
JULY 14, 1979
- There cannot be a church of My Son looking like a Quaker meeting
place. It is the House of God, My children and My child; My Son's
Church is a House of God and all come to honor Him. They do not
come to have a social gathering...............There must be holiness
returned to My Son's Church. This responsibility weighs heavily
on the shoulders of the clergy, the hierarchy. I assure you, My
clergy, unless you act immediately upon the counsel from Heaven,
many mitres shall fall into hell. (vol II page 232)
JULY 25, 1979
- I ask you as your Mother, too, not to give in or give up in
this struggle to retain a semblance of the Church of My Son upon
earth. You will speak out and continue to approach the clergy
in your parish. The monuments, the statues, must remain............All
honor must be given to My Son in the Eucharist. Man must kneel.
My Son's House is the House of God and a house of prayer, and
it must not be turned into a meeting hall. ..........The enemies
of God have entered even upon My Son's Church. Will you not come
forward as disciples of these last days and fight for My Son to
retain His Church?! (vol II page 234)
Unless you restore My House, My Church,
to its former glory your doors will close, your clergy will be
persecuted, and only a remnant shall be left. Is this what you
want, you who consort and try to form, a socialistic church upon
earth? No angels are building it with you; they are demons. (vol
II page 235)
AUGUST 4, 1979
- My child and My children, a long discourse will not be given
by Me, though I am certain My Mother has made it known to you
quite distinctly and clearly, and understandable to My clergy
in particular, that there must be a major reversal of the present
trend for innovation, change and experimentation in My Church.
(vol II page 238)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979
- You have been given My heart. I have given you the way through
the prophets sent among you, countless years of earth's time.
The Book of life, your Bible, must not be changed to suit the
world; for when the world and My Church are united as one, you
will know that the end is at hand. (vol II page 248)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979
- My children, I have asked you in the face of crisis, to stand
firm. You must not desert your parish, or the doors will close.
My Son is still in the tabernacles of the world. Do not judge
My Son's Church by the antics of man, for every human can be tempted
and become weak and fall, only, though, because you have offered
too few prayers for your bishops and your priests, and your beloved
relations soon forgotten in Purgatory. The value of penance for
the repatriation of the souls in Purgatory have been forgotten,
are no longer taught to the children, creating a void in their
lives, a void that is being filled by the occult and satanism!
(vol II page 250,251)
Your world now is insane with sin.
The distinction from the Eternal Father, the distinction between
man and woman, is being cast aside. The homes of many now have
no anchor, no faith, no love, no God. And as in My Son's Church,
I have warned you that a house in darkness wears a band of death
about it, so I say unto you as your Mother each home in darkness
wears a band of death about it. (vol II page 251)
OCTOBER 2, 1979
- Saint Michael was, is, and always will be the guardian of the
Faith in My Son's Church upon earth. You must now bring him back,
in sight and in sound and in prayer. For as he remains outside
the portals, the portals shall crumble, the doors shall close,
persecution shall abound upon your earth. (vol II page 253,254)
My children, it is a delusion for
mankind to believe that a form and manner of humanism shall save
the world. Modernism shall destroy the world and My Son's Church;
but not the foundation, for My Son is the foundation. Though the
walls may crumble, the pillars may shake, the foundation is solid;
for it is My Son, and it shall be rebuilt, after the great
Chastisement, to its form glory. The Eternal Father has
full control over your world; though, in your free will now, He
will allow you to follow your own course to destruction. (vol
II page 254)
The kernels that survive in a store
often fall on rocks and don't bloom and bring forth and bear fruit.
But now, as I look upon My House, My Church upon earth, I find
you have opened the doors to thieves and robbers. All manner of
heresy abounds now in the hearts of man. You have turned from
your God, and you are forming false gods of worship based on a
humanistic way of life............You shall not modernize My Church.
For you shall not change My Church to suit man, but you must reverse
the course of man to bring him to his God. For I have given you
the grace in your vocations to gather My sheep, and you have chosen
to scatter them! (vol II page 255)
OCTOBER 6, 1979
- Do not abandon My Son's Church because of the antics, because
of the personality, of some or many of My Son's representatives
in the priesthood. Do not judge My Son's House, His Church, by
man's reasoning. But remember; you must remain in your parish
churches, partaking of the Bread of Life in the Eucharist. My
Son is always with you in the Eucharist. (vol II page 258)
Michael, Saint Michael, is the guardian
of My Church upon earth. And, Pastors, you must replace him! I
say replace; take out your banners and pagan symbols, and bring
Michael back into My Church for your protection! (vol II page
260)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979
- The great Chastisement of the Ball of Redemption approaches
also. Minor trials shall take place, My children, must you wait
until all is destroyed before you will acknowledge that you have
been wrong in your procedures, in your teachings, and in your
seeking for scientific renovations and novelties, even in My Son's
Church upon earth? ..........There must be a complete cleansing
of My Son's Church. What do you do, My children, when your house
has been infested by rodents or vermin? You clean out your house.
You do not abandon it; for it has taken much love and much labor
to build the walls. You do not abandon it, but you work and pray,
and use every means to clean out My Son's House, His Church.
.................Do you understand Me, My children? I ask you
not to abandon My Son's Church in the crisis of Faith now, but
to keep the Bark of Peter afloat. I ask you not to remain silent
when you meet with wrongdoing, but to speak out and act to correct
a situation that is offensive to your God and destructive to your
soul. Speak once, and if not hastened or listened to, speak no
more, but pray that the Eternal Father in Heaven will open up
the ears of those who have closed their hearts and their ears
to the truth. (vol II page 261)
JUNE 18, 1980
- I do not intend to act as a hammer upon the heretics who have
entered My Church, the deceivers, those not of the Faith who entered
to destroy. My Mother shall direct this battle. Lucifer and his
agents are in Rome now. Do you not know what this means? Are you
so blinded that you do not know of the power of Lucifer? My children,
My pastors, awaken from your slumber! While you sleep the sheep
have run away. Awaken from your slumber! While you sleep the sheep
have run away. Awaken and save your own souls, for you have brought
scandal into My Church. (vol II page 273)
OCTOBER 2, 1980
- I give you a final warning from the Eternal Father. You will
turn back and restore the earth. You will turn back and restore
My Church upon earth. You shall not set up a new church of man,
for I shall destroy it. You shall see nations disappear from the
earth in seconds. (vol II page 274)
OCTOBER 6, 1980
- The world will soon learn that there exists now another unseen
world of evil that is closing in now, for satan knows that his
time is growing short. As I told you in the past, My child and
My children, sin is insanity, and it is only now the beginning.
Unless you pray and make atonement to the Eternal Father, you
will see abominations and the desecration of churches, and murders
will abound until those who remain upon earth will envy the dead.
(vol II page 278)
Beware of those who start a new church
among you. A Roman Catholic Church, must have a legally ordained
Roman Catholic Bishop, and the Old Catholic Church is not with
Rome. It is a schismatic organization, and all who join these
interlopers shall gain immediate excommunication by Heaven and
through the legal Hierarchy of Rome. The Old Catholic Church is
schismatic, and is not, and shall not use the name Roman Catholic
Church. Later, My child, when you gain your strength, We will
extend this message to mankind. For many shall come as angels
of light and deceive the elect.........I ask you all not to abandon
My Church. Do not judge My Church by the priest, for in his human
nature he can err, But I assure you, I am using him, as a legally
ordained priest, to bring you My Body and Blood. Do not go seeking
elsewhere, for you will lose your baptismal right, and you will
no longer be accepted as a Roman Catholic, and you will not enter
into the highest place of Heaven, the Kingdom of Paradise, (vol
II page 279)
MAY 30, 1981
- I have asked you to get down on your knees. Clergy in My Son's
House, His Church, restore the altar railings that man may be
on his knees. For many shall crawl on their knees in desperation
seeking to flee, but nowhere shall they escape the flames. Restore
My Son's Church while there is time. Return the railings. Have
the people make atonement upon their knees to their God...................Why
must you be like immature children, to be punished before you
will be obedient to your God? Can you say, O clergy in My Son's
House, and those who profess with mouths and barren hearts allegiance
to Our Vicar in Rome; when he dies, you have killed him, because
of your disobedience. (vol II page 282)
For to whom much is given, much is
expected; and discipline and obedience means suffering and sacrifice.
Unquestioning love, unquestioning obedience, that is the only
way to Heaven. Accepting all suffering, and offering this for
good cause. Too few know, My child. I know Theresa has given you
the full discourse on the value of suffering, that one day you
will release to the world when you complete your second book,
That will be left for My Church. (vol II page 283)
O My children, protect your families;
pray constantly a constant vigil of prayer. Not enough prayers
have been offered for your clergy. Many bishops proceed onto a
road that will lead them to hell, but sadly they will take others
with them.........There must be a complete cleansing of My Son's
Church. What do you do, My children, when your house has been
infested by rodents or vermin? You clean out your house. You do
not abandon it; for it has taken much love and much labor to build
the walls. You do not abandon it, but you work and pray, and use
every means to clean out My Son's House, His Church. (vol II
page 284)
JUNE 18, 1981
- Man has the balance, man has been given in free will the balance
for his own fall, or restoration of a nation to its former glory
under God. Like rodents, the enemies of your God have eaten away
at the foundations of the Faith. But in a short time they will
be destroyed, and a new House will rise, a Church stronger in
faith, and sanctity and holiness. But this cannot, My children,
take place until a great Chastisement is set upon mankind. (vol
II page 292)
AUGUST 14, 1981
- I have asked you in the past, and I ask and continue to beg
you, My children, not to abandon your Vicar in Rome, and not to
abandon your parish church. You may have discord with your pastor,
you may have discord with other priests in your parish, but you
must remember this, My children, if it gives you any consolation
in human nature, and for their human nature you must understand;
you must honor them for who they are, but not judge them for what
they are or have become............My Son's Church has been laid
out and the course to Heaven, the way to Heaven has been given
by Him. Therefore, change causes confusion and error. When you
have something beautiful, when you have a firm foundation, you
don't start boring holes in it, or you will weaken it. However,
I would suggest that you say that the walls have cracked, My child
and My children. For the foundation is My Son, and in parable
and symbolism, I say, the foundation is solid. My Son is the Church.
Man may build another church, but he shall not have the angels
assist him.
My heart, My Son's heart has been
grieved, as We go about the world and see the carnage taking place
within His Church. We can see a division bordering on schism.
My children, I have asked you in the past; We cannot have this
division, for it is promoted by satan. The adage of old remains
forever true; United you will stand but divided you will fall............Do
not judge My Son's House, His Church, by the man, though he is
a representative; legal, a legal representative of My Son, in
His House. He is but a human in his nature. But during the time
that My Son comes to you, this man will be used through the Holy
Spirit, regardless of the state of his human nature, be it sin
or a saint; be it a sinner or one who has led even those astray;
at the time that My Son comes in the Consecration. He shall not
turn aside from you, My Son. Therefore, you cannot say the Mass
is invalid. This has brought great sorrow to Our Hearts, for many
left the fold on this matter. (vol II page 294)
Be a good example to all in your
parish church. Do not be deterred by the opinion of any man, whether
he is of lay, or of a denomination of the religious. Remember,
My children, when you come over the veil, there is no one to defend
you. You will only bring with you love and prayers, and your own
merits to bring to the Eternal Father for your judgment. ..........Remove
your thoughts, your judgments from the man standing at the altar
who represents My Son. See only in him as one who is My Son at
the moment of Consecration, be he sinful or be he a saint. In
time you will understand and accept this counsel. (vol II page
295)
MARCH 18, 1983
- Unless you pray for your Vicar Pope John Paul II he will be
removed from among you. And if this takes place there will be
far worse sacrilege committed in the city of Rome and the parishes
throughout the world. ............Up to this time, My child and
My children, you know full well that the wishes and the directives
from Rome, from the Eternal Father in Heaven, through Pope John
II, they have been cast aside, each and every individual going
his own way and making My Son's House a shambles............Veronica:
Now Our Lady is pointing to the right, and high up in the sky;
the sky is opening up. Oh, I recognize it now. I'm standing in
the square in Rome. I can see St. Peter's. But now I see blood;
blood running down St. Peter's and into the square there, and
it's dividing, it's dividing the Church in half.............Our
Lady: That, My child, is symbolism of what is to be. When Pope
John Paul II is removed, the Church shall be divided among itself.
United it will stand, divided it will fall. (vol II page 378)
M E S S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG)
- My child, I wish at this time that you will take three pictures.
They are very important, because as I have made known to you before,
and you will repeat again: Satan has entered into the highest
realms of the Hierarchy. A Church in darkness wears a band of
death about it. Better that there be a few with quality than nothingness.
For without the light of God truly shining within My Son's Churches
on earth, they will become darkened, as they take with them onto
the road to perdition many souls. Do not judge them, My children,
when you come upon these lost souls, but pray for their salvation,
for many have been misled. ..............As I said before, My
Son's Church is in great crisis. The enemies of God, with Russia
as the head, now seeks to destroy the knowledge of the Eternal
Father in the Trinity. My Son they seek to take My Son from history
and try to defame Him for their own gains.
My child and my children, you must
do your utmost to bring back into My House, My Church upon earth,
the Faith. I often cried through My Mother's tears, Her tears
and Mine abounded over the earth, because through the Eternal
Father, man was given a conscience and a free will, to either
accept Heaven by sacrifice and penance, and having to face the
rebuke of a darkened world. .................I hold your country,
My child, at fault because too few who are in power in the government
and the teachers from My Church on earth, too few are willing
to fight against the abomination of the homosexuality that is
raging throughout the United States, Canada, and the world. In
no way will homosexuality be accepted, for it means damnation
and destruction. And I say this to you, once fair maidens in the
convents of the world, who have chosen to cast aside your profession
and your oaths of allegiance to you God to seek a more pleasurable
life upon earth without your habits, without your convents, and
living the life of a lay person.............All who have received
Holy Orders, legally, shall be held accountable for their casting
aside their profession, for they are weakening the structure of
My House.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG)
- I say now, My children, that you must understand there are great
graces given for reading the Bible, even a short time of fifteen
minutes; you will be graced by indulgences. Have you forgotten,
My children, in the modernization of My Son's Church, have you
forgotten the meaning of indulgences? They are applicable to the
time you may have to put in purgatory, My children.........I say
goods because, My children, many have sold their souls to get
to the head. They place more value on their coins. No coins shall
jiggle on their person when they come for judgment. One day there
will be a great General Judgment, and all mankind then will be
forced to accept what he has sown. Many are throwing away the
time allotted to them to right the wrong, to restore My Son's
Church to its former glory, to bring your children out of the
darkness and into the light.
Yes, My child, I must tell you, since
much of your penance for the priesthood has been accepted, My
child, I at first chose not to mention the sorrow We have because
of the manner in which My House upon earth is being continued,
a House, because of modernism, satanism, and seeking the profound,
not in the history of My House, but in the new modern way of doing
things. This new modern way has been promoted by satan...............Yes,
My child, even with Vatican II, it started out with the best resolves,
but then satan took over the scene. And with his agents he reached
into the highest professions, the highest league of the Hierarchy,
until it saddens Me to say that many priests now are on the road
to perdition and taking many others with them.
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG)
- My child and My children I do not have to tell you that the
knowledge of hell and purgatory has been slowly corrupted, cut
apart, and cut asunder from the Church. My child and My children,
you are all My children, I judge you not by color or race, and
I do not judge you by your creed; however, should the knowledge
of the One True Church be given to you, and the way to Heaven
along the narrow road be given to you, you will follow it or you
will be rejected. There are, My children, so many poor souls now
that are languishing in purgatory; some will be there till the
end of time. Will you not succor them, My children, will you not
pray for them and shorten their time in this place of dark suffering?................I
see and understand, My child, your feelings to this matter. I
know you have pity for all. Many are fast on the road to perdition.
Many are to be pitied as they follow this road, especially, My
children, by advancing farther into the mores of satan in practicing
illegal, immoral acts............One of the Fathers of your Church,
St. Paul, made it known to you quite licitly, that men shall not
consort with men; and neither shall men dress as women. These
are all abominations in the eyes of the Eternal Father, Whose
Hand steadily rocks back and forth the comet; Whose Hand steadily
seeks to raise and throw upon you, so that you will be planet-struck
with the comet.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG)
- My child, I wish for prayers of atonement, especially for the
protection of the Holy Father in Rome. As I have warned you, the
time is growing short, and the enemies of My Son's Church are
accelerating in their plan to do away with your Vicar; your Vicar
who has been sent to you by God the Father to save the whole institution
of religion in the world, and not have it fall into the hands
of the egomaniacs that reside in the land called Russia. ........My
child and My children, this could be an occasion of great joy,
My coming to you. But the fate of humanity and the world lies
in the hands and the hearts of the faithful. Without your prayers
and your acts of penance, you cannot save your Pope, and Our son,
your Vicar. I will say, in My Mother's heart, from My Mother's
heart to you, that your Vicar will soon meet with an enemy, who
comes as an angel of light to him, but is an enemy of My Son's
Church, and all of My Son's churches throughout the world. We
choose, My child, to call them the House of God, because it is
a home, a refuge, for all of Our children who suffer, and are
brought to naught by modern science. In this way We hope that
modern science will accept the supernatural, but they rather would
cast it aside, My child and My children.
My child, I know you are affrighted
at this word 'war'; 'death', 'turmoil', 'depression', but what
can I do but tell you the truth. I cannot smooth over it, for
I would be accepted like those upon earth who like ostriches,
they walk about, proud in their scientific knowledge. However,
they are fooled by satan, for satan has made it known, and We
here, My children, as defenders of the Faith, defenders of My
Son's House upon earth, We, also, know the truth, that satan is
loosed upon earth. All hell is opened up wide. Every major and
minor demon, called the devils by others, only they remain upon
earth now. Those who perish now in the name of their Faith shall
be held in abeyance to meet with My Son, in His second descent
onto the earth. ..........Since the world has given itself over
to murders, murders of the unborn, father against son, daughters
against mothers, all manner of carnage; also, being perpetrated
in My House, My Church upon earth. How long do you think I shall
stand by and watch the destruction of the young, because of parents
who should not accept the role or the name of parents, for they
are destroying their children's souls by their example. .............and
I say, My poor children, remember My words: When you become ill,
be it physical, mental, or sorrowfully in your heart, you will
say, my Jesus, my confidence! And I will truly succor you. I use
that word, My child, 'succor', because it was a favorite word
of one of Our sons of My Son's House. Yes, you know, and all know
who this was, though he met an untimely death, as did the other
who came after him.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I speak with you this evening to caution you, and not, to not fall into despair because there is a conflict over My Brown Scapular...
You will know, My children, that
there are always rules and regulations for everything that man
holds sacred. Therefore, because so few priests in My Son's Church
are willing to intercede with the Scapular, and enthrone those
who wish it, it has become necessary to give a Scapular to every
child upon earth; and he or she of reasonable age shall go forth
and find a kind-hearted and true, holy priest to enroll them.
It will take, My children, much doing to find these priests; there
are not many left...................O My children, how difficult
you are making it for Me, especially the priests in My Son's House
upon earth, His Church. I cry tears endlessly when I know that
every day My Son is confronted by numerous souls who have lost
their way, and refused the redemption that will come to him through
wearing the Brown Scapular................My child, do not be
stopped in your efforts to give out these Scapulars. I directed
you well, My children, in several instances throughout your lifetime.
Think back, My child and My children, think back to the days when
you were enrolled in the Brown Scapular.
My child and My children, you may
ask your priests for knowledge of the stories coming from the
old, elderly fathers of My Son's Church, but can they tell you
the truth now that their seminaries have become polluted with
errors? Mothers cry to Me; I hear all of their prayers, prayers
to Heaven to save their children. And where can they find the
knowledge of the truth to teach them? That will depend now upon
an earnest mother and father, and discipline. Children are like
soft flowers that must be nourished so that their stalks will
grow; and their faces, the purity of their faces, shall rise toward
Heaven and be nourished with the fruits of life. .............My
child, this evening there is one more subject that must be resolved
and dismissed quickly. All over your country and the world, there
are groups forming that have alienated themselves from their hierarchy.
I have asked you many times to not form another church. I have
asked you to remain and suffer for all the souls upon earth; suffer,
even though you know that the Eternal Father watches what is going
on. We do not want a schism. We do not wish that new churches
be formed. Though they meaning is well, they can lead to nothing
but destruction and schism.
We hear all names coming forward
to Our ears of churches being born anew, called the Traditional
Roman Catholic Church. My child and My children, We need no more
Traditionalists running around and creating new churches. We have
to remain steadfast and firm in our convictions that with enough
prayer, and, also, the firm example of holiness among many, this
will not happen.................We do not condemn those who make
these side churches, the Traditional Roman Catholic churches;
they mean well, but they are being led astray. There will be eventually
an American Catholic Church if this continues. This is not approved
by Heaven. Man's judgment can always err, especially when he discounts
the knowledge of the supernatural..........Remember, My children,
I have asked you to remain steadfast in your parish churches,
even though it will be a crucifixion to you. We cannot have schism
in the United States and Canada. For those who are united shall
stand, and those who divide themselves shall fall. My child and
My children, do not discount this part of the Message from Heaven.
It is most urgent that this breaking away stop now before it evolves
into a major schism.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG)
- You will tell mankind that the sins of the flesh shall send
many souls to hell. My child, the need for materialism is wrong.
And the need for modernizing the world and My Son's Church is
wrong. And passing over the grievous sin of immorality and, also,
pornography, and all the other evils, are placed under the heading
of humanism; even accepting without a frown, or proper attention
to a sin, in accepting the aftermath of AIDS, received through
inhuman relationships. I say 'inhuman' because those relationships
are not from God, My children, but they are from satan. Homosexuality
shall always be condemned because it is against the nature of
man; and it is a violation of all human morality, and shall not
be tolerated by the Eternal Father in the Trinity.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG)
- St. Michael: Veronica, my child, announce to the world that
the end approaches for your most illustrious President of the
United States, and, also, your Pope, John Paul II.................I
know, my child, Veronica, that this has affrighted you, but it
is most frightening to know that we cannot get enough peoples
upon earth to pray and assist the Holy Father in his day of suffering.
Yes, my child and my children, tell the world immediately that
the Holy Father suffers greatly for he too, has been given insight
in visions to know what lies ahead for him. But he is willing
to suffer all for the salvation of souls and the good of the Holy
Church.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG)
- My child, I know you are in wonderment of why Michael is holding
the chalice with anxiety. I must tell you within the chalice in
Michael's hands are the Hosts collected from throughout the world
that had been discarded by the faithless. I have asked that My
Son's Body be protected upon earth. But many clergy now have cast
aside My warnings from Heaven, and His Body has been placed and
thrown on the floors, and into the water fonts of many of My Son's
Churches throughout the world. ....................My child, I
ask this of you this evening, that is why I requested that you
do not eat, I ask that you accept My Son. You will do heavy penance
for the world in the coming months, My child. But you will accept
My Son for the world. I want you, My child, to raise your heart
to Heaven now, and beg forgiveness to mankind from the Eternal
Father. My child, you will now receive one of the Hosts taken
from the water fonts.
My child, I want the world to know
that Michael is the guardian of the highest Heaven. You must also
tell the priests within My Son's Church that they must return
Michael to his rightful place as guardian of the Church, or they
will be subjected to terrible trials. What has happened to nations
throughout the world, through Russia, shall happen to the United
States and Canada. Russia, My children, is not entering where
you can see them. They are infiltrating now into every side of
your nation; north, south, east, and west; on the outer fringes
and the inner fringes. ...............My children, much of the
evil now that is spreading in the United States and Canada was
promoted by these men and women of satan, known as communists,
who have been allowed to enter not only into your country and
the countries of the world, but also in My Son's Church upon earth.
Yes, My child, I want you to let
the world know that Our seminaries were not pure. Many had entered
for this very day to try to destroy the Faith and the Church of
My Son. You must know that the Eternal Father will not permit
this................Veronica: Now Jesus is looking all about
Him. He's looking over to Saint Mark, Saint Luke, and Saint Matthew,
and Saint John, there. And He's whispering something to them but
I can't hear. I guess I'm not supposed to hear it; I can't hear
it. It sounds like the rustling of the wind, but He's talking
to them. Oh, I see now....They're holding up what looks like pens.
They're very strange looking pens; they look like a feather with
just a point on the end. And they're writing; each one of them
has a book, and they're writing in the books. Now Jesus is nodding.
...............You have taken that correctly, My child, That is
the manner in which the Book of life and love was written for
you. I say for you, because it was to be established as the cornerstone
of My Church; let Us say that, My child; the cornerstone of My
Church is the Book of life and love, that you call the Bible.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - My child and My children, My heart is so lightened with joy at the numbers of wonderful souls who have come here this evening to honor the Eternal Father when He sent Me sixteen earth-years ago, down upon earth, to try to stop the crisis in the Church, and the chaos that is going throughout all the countries of the world. .....................I say this evening, as your God, that on that date, as promised at Fatima, satan entered My Church upon earth. He brought with him his agents, and satan himself, the deceiver of all mankind, sat in on Vatican II and maneuvered all the outsiders to come in and distort My doctrines and distort the truth. .......At Fatima, My Mother tried to warn of this coming event, but who cared to listen? Who was interested in listening? Not those who were years, earth-years away. All Heaven was crying in that time, for the Eternal Father had made it known how His message would be received. To this day, to your earth-year 1986, you have not been given, My children, the full secrets as given to the children at Fatima.................Therefore, I must make it known at this time to you. If you are perceiving and interested in My Church upon earth. I do not have to explain Myself too fully; for you will already know of the chaos that satan has wrought when he entered My Church. And why did he enter, you say? This I want it made known, My child, and you will not be affrighted as you are now, you will speak out for Me and My Mother, and the Eternal Father in the Holy Spirit; you
will speak out and say that satan
is in the Church, My Church upon earth. He knows his time is growing
short.
And if you think you have seen carnage
now already in the Church, the worst is yet to come, unless you
follow the rules, given by My Mother many years ago, of prayer,
atonement, and sacrifice. By your example you may be able to save
others. For soon there will come upon you the great Chastisement.
It comes in two parts, My child and My children: The Third World
War and, also, the Ball of Redemption. These can no longer be
delayed. For the good seem to go about their way, perhaps pride
fully. We do not seek to accuse or place a stigma on any, but
some may pride fully sit back and let others go forth and make
these sacrifices and prayers and penance. Because they have become
smug, or because they have not the grace to understand, that once
you receive this grace much is expected of you. You must even
work harder to save your brothers and sisters.........My child
and My children, this message will not be greeted gleefully by
your clergy. But since Lucy has been silenced, it is necessary
that the world knows the truth. I will also send this message
out through one more seer in the world, and if it is not abided
by, I have nothing to do but to allow the Chastisement to fall
upon mankind. .................My child and My children, I come
once more with an urgent and pleading message to the hierarchy
in the Church, My Church upon earth. I want you to know now that
We look upon you and find many that do not fall into grace. They
are falling out of grace and misleading many of Our sheep.
Therefore, I warn you now as your
God: You will stop your intricacies within My Church. You will
stop experimenting. I gave you the rules to follow many years
ago, two thousand years approximately. And why now, two thousand
years later, do you deem it necessary to change My Church upon
earth? I, your God, say to you, you will be judged accordingly.
You will return My Church to its former glory, and in that manner
you will have more vocations and more entering the seminaries,
and not fleeing from them as they hear the heresies and all other
innovations that are going on within My Church. This is My last
and final word to My clergy. Change now or suffer a just punishment
and banishment. ................My child, that message must go
out strictly without change. You must not be worried nor affrighted
by any of the message because it is a dire necessity. I can no
longer stand by and watch, day by day without change, what is
happening in My Father's place upon earth. I say it in glory to
the Father and the Holy Spirit; it is His Church on earth.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG)
- It has become a most distressing situation for the Eternal Father.
Many He would remove from the See of Peter, but it seems, My children,
that the only way they can be removed is from force; for they
do hearken to the threats, nor even he advice and counsel of
the Holy Father in Rome. ................The successor to Peter
has been chosen well. We sat him upon the Throne of Peter for
the principal reason to return My Son's Church to its original
state. Understand well, My children, that he is also a human being
subject to error. But this does not men that he is to be subjected
to derision and hate, until you build up a fire within the hearts
of those who are seeking to destroy him. Better that you pray
for the Holy Father than to deride him. Do not question him at
this time, because I assure you, My children, as he will tell
you in due time, I, too, have appeared to the Holy Father. ...........We
do not want division within the Church. That will solve nothing.
You cannot separate yourself from the Holy Father in Rome. And
once you are baptized as a Roman Catholic, you must die within
the fold; you cannot reject it. There are many false prophets
going throughout the world now seeking to take your soul to satan.
They come as angels of light.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG)
- Remember, My child, I have already told you, as My Mother did
sometime ago, that the enemy is closing in fast upon you. You
are being tempted now to bring your sons to the foreign shores
of foreign nations to fight and lose their lives. Is this what
you want? How many hearts of parents will be torn by the carnage
of receiving greetings from the United states or Canada, from
the Army, the Navy, the Marines, saying: Your son is dead or missing
in action..................Is this what you want? Cannot you do
a slight penance for your God, for your neighbors? Love your neighbors,
even if they malign you, even if they make fun of you. Remember,
you hold the truth in your hearts and in your hands; for you carry
the Rosary, you carry your Scapular about your necks, and you
also wear the St. Benedict medal. Satan must run at the sight
of the St. Benedict medal, as well as he will when you cast the
waters of truth upon him, your holy waters, gathered from the
many holy churches left upon earth. Use them all, My children.
All! Your armor cannot be strong enough; that is how strong the
enemy has become in your country and many nations of the world.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG)
- I say the true Church upon earth, My Church, My children, which
has been defamed, even by some of My clergy. They have been taken
away by crude, and Zealous, people who go about posing as witnesses
to God. You understand, My children; I am talking to you now about
the Jehovah Witnesses. They must be cast aside, for they are false
prophets in these end days. But many, how many tears My Mother
has shed upon the earth, as She seen how many have been....capitulated
to this evil sect.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG)
- When I came to Fatima many years ago, I knew that communism
would go throughout the world destroying many nations and attacking
My Son's Church. Therefore, I made a promise that if the Pope,
the Pope of those days and the Pope today, would unite with all
the bishops of the world, all together on one day, not the world,
but the bishops and the Pope will unite and pray for the consecration
of Russia I do not mean the world, My children; I mean Russia,
Russia, the scourge of mankind. You will pray for Russia. One
day must be allotted in which Pope John Paul II and, also, all
the bishops of the world must unite on one day, I repeat, and
pray for Russia, or Russia will continue to be the scourge from
God. Russia will continue to go throughout the world annihilating
people and places and countries...........My Mother has gone throughout
the world to try to stop the carnage that man is making upon other
nations. Brother against brother, sister against sister. For what?
What is there to gain if you lose your soul? Murder is a sin that
is not condoned in Heaven nor upon earth; therefore, why must
you murder and kill your brothers? For what? For money? For social
standing? For gain? And what is that but a passing fancy. For
this is a world where man passes through but for a short duration.
You real life is over the veil. That is when your life begins.
You are all pilgrims upon earth going forward to honor your God,
and I should say, that many dishonor Him now, even in His own
Church upon earth. ................I ask this of you as your God:
In the Holy Sacrifice that I left with you. I did not ask for
women to be upon the altar, nor try to be a high priestess. They
carry this on in the churches of satan; therefore, it shall not
be carried on in My Church.
When I had the Last Supper with the
Apostles, My Mother was not present. If I had it in My power from
the Eternal Father to make a priestess, I would surely have chosen
My Mother; but, no, there were no women present at the first Dedication..................My
child and My children, I do not have to go through the long list
of carnage that is taking place in My Church upon earth. It will
suffer a great Chastisement soon, very soon, for the communism
that is spreading throughout your country, the United States,
is entering upon the churches. You can see what they already did,
My child, to your church, and understand why We are so desperately
in need of those who are willing to sacrifice their lives for
the hereafter. I say the hereafter, for the reward in Heaven shall
be great for those who will be willing to stand up and fight for
the truth, for their God, to keep the Church as I asked it to
be: One, Holy and Apostolic. ...........I cannot say that in My
visits upon earth, I cannot say that I find much holiness left
within the portals of My Churches, My children. This has to be
regained. There is a force restraining you in these efforts. That
is satan. He does not wish to see My Church come back to its true
standards. He wishes to demolish it, and to stand and stomp on
it with his feet....................I come to you as your God,
and I also want to make this clear: I did not have any brothers
or sisters in My family. My Mother was Mary ever Virgin. This
was a supernatural manifestation from Heaven; and only those who
are in the light, they fully understand the existence of My Mother
and the role She played in establishing the One, True Church upon
earth.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG)
- We have other things to discuss, My child, before the evening
is over. I want the world to know now that We will no longer tolerate
the murders of the unborn. The Eternal Father finds that children
He had great plans for to bring the true Faith to the world and
to save His Son's Church, they have been murdered in the womb.
Satan is the father of all liars, and many reasons are given for
abortion. And even now in Our convents, they are going about counseling
women who are about to have abortions; whereas they do not tell
them the truth that they are murderers and they are mothers who
will murder their own children.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG)
- My child and My children, the United States of America now is
in dire conflict with its conscience. But you must remember: Without
My Son they cannot succeed. Slowly but surely, against all the
counsel from Heaven of the past nineteen years, man has become
more scurrilous and more antagonistic towards My Son until he
has even entered My Son's Church, seeking to cast aside all tradition
and all knowledge of the supernatural, bringing a mode of modernism
and humanism into My Son's Church. This has forced many a good
soul to lose his way and leave the Church. ...................My
children, I beg of you, as your Mother, do not leave My Son's
Church. Do not allow the rodents to come in and burrow and underground
My Son's Church. You can save it if you will only pray more. Pray
for sinners, that they will seek the light and be given the knowledge
of the errors of their ways, so that they can turn back before
it is too late, children are to be lost.
Already there is much discord in
My Church upon earth. It saddens everyone in Heaven. And We are
out in force now, going throughout the world seeking to set up
armies of good children who will fight, to the bitter end if necessary,
to save My Church upon earth. It is being destroyed. Just as rodents
will burrow into a house those who have evil natures are burrowing
into My Church. We find it almost unrecognizable, My children.
However, I will say this: I asked you to remain in your parish
churches, not to judge by the actions of man......................The
institution itself, as set up by Me, remains to be true; however,
the cavorting and the banjos and the guitars and the musical interludes
and the dancing are all created by satan. So you can understand
that satan has entered now with his armies in full regalia, appearing
as humans. However, they are demons in disguise, and they have
one ultimate aim: To try to destroy My Church, the Roman Catholic
Church, with the seat of Peter as the head.
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - My child, Veronica, I have a mission for you that may not be pleasant. You can reject it when you hear Me out, or you can answer yes. What I want you to do, My child, is to reach your bishop. And you will write to him, if not a personal visit - that I will leave up to you, My child. But you will tell your bishop that We in Heaven are much distressed by his current action of allowing the Lutheran groups to enter upon the Cathedral, My Church upon earth, the Cathedral of St. Agnes. You will tell him that all Heaven is distressed by his mistake. ....
You, My child, will pray much for
your bishop and all of the bishops of the world. ............There
are so many errors now abounding that it seems almost hopeless
to recover those who have lost their faith. Many have left My
Church upon earth, and this disagrees with the heavenly plan to
save all mankind..........Remember, My child and My children,
no matter how rough the road gets, you will stay within your parish
church. And by good example and many prayers you will bring the
priesthood back into the light. Many have lost their way because
there are so few who pray for them. Remember, My children, to
pray for your clergy, for they are human also and subject to error,
mistakes, influence, and sometimes, pure evil. Pray for your priests
daily, My children.
On June 8, 1989, Most Reverend John
R. McGann, the Roman Catholic Bishop of Rockville Center, Long
Island, New York, permitted the use of St. Agnes Cathedral for
a Lutheran ordination ceremony. It was precisely this action that
evoked such a strong remark and request for action by Our Lord,
Himself, to the seer, Veronica Lueken......................About
1,000 Lutherans gathered for the six ordinations of four men and
two women to the Lutheran ministry by the two Lutheran Bishops.
In the June 15, 1989 issue, the Long Island Catholic reported
that "four people present expressed anger and described allowing
the service and ordinations as "heresy." Father Donald
Hansen, vice chancellor of the diocese, said the bishop's office
had received complaints about the service.
Lutheranism is the oldest Protestant
religion founded by Martin Luther on October 31, 1517. (Luther
ordained a Augustinian Catholic priest, was excommunicated in
1520) Some of their religious beliefs which include, Scripture
as the sole authority, justification by faith alone, and the doctrine
of con substantiation in connection with the Eucharist are clearly
heretical and not in harmony with the pure doctrine of the one
true Church as founded by Jesus Christ, the Roman Catholic Church.
................Loyalty to Christ and His Church forbids the sanctioning
in any way a false religion, and allowing the Lutheran service
on the altar of St. Agnes could be construed by the faithful that
one religion is as good as the other, and as a result, a cause
of great scandal to many. ..................Traditionally, a Lutheran
ceremony in a Catholic Church would be considered an act of desecration!
A procedure known as the rites of reconciliation would then be
implemented by the local Ordinary to purify the desecrated church.................Truly
one can see why all of Heaven is much distressed. .....................*A
distinction should be made here. Material heresy is the rejection
of some truth of the Catholic faith without knowing that it is
the truth. Most Protestants would fall in this category. Thus,
no sin is committed, and no guilt incurred.
OCTOBER 2, 1989 (MSG) - Be it known to all men upon earth that the antichrist has entered now among you. Be it known to Our bishops and cardinals: (I do not include Pope John Paul II at this time, because he is under the domination of his bishops and cardinals) I look upon My Church at this time and I find gross errors. I tell you now, all bishops and cardinals of the world: My Church shall not be defaced. You shall not defame My Name. I will allow this to continue but for a short time. If you do not acknowledge Me properly before the world, I assure you, I will not acknowledge you before the Father; and you will not have rest with My Father in Heaven. ..........
My child and My children, I ask you
in the name of the Father, and My Son, and the Holy Ghost, to
listen to Me now. The course you are on is a course to destruction.
Satan has entered into My Son's Church. You remember, My children,
Pope Paul VI, Our good Vicar, said to the world, "I know
that the smoke of satan has entered into the Church." But
who listens to him, and who did listen to him? But they laid him
low, and put another in his place..................I know, My
child, the derision and the scoffing that comes your way because
of this message. But you will go forward, My child, and not listening
to the scoffers, you will succeed one day in bringing forward
to Us many wandering sheep. ...........I say unto the cardinals
and bishops in My Son's Church: I am much grieved at your conduct.
You will be accountable to the Eternal Father for the destruction
of souls. And the abuses that go forward against My Son cannot
be tolerated by the Eternal Father. My Son suffers greatly upon
earth. Have you forgotten so soon how He sacrificed His very Being
for you all? And what are you doing in return. .................Many
prayers are needed for the clergy. Won't you, My children, help
them? For many are lost; they are on the road to perdition. Please
help them. I ask you as your Mother, in your merciful hearts,
for My Son and the good of His Church, pray for your priests,
your cardinals, and bishops.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG)
- Veronica, My child, I repeat again, though My Mother had been
throughout your country for years now, with Her messages: We ask
that the priests take themselves out of the world. They are becoming
men of the state, not men of God. I accept the degradation and
the present confusion in My Church upon earth, but I want a change
back to normal. Man is building a church without the Eternal Father.
OCTOBER 3, 1991 (MSG)
- Because of the nature and government of the Church, Lucifer
is able to implement and set in motion his plan of destruction.
His deceptive measures, cunning ways, and subtleties are filtered
down through the ranks and throughout the universal Church causing
confusion and discouragement with many and a false sense of progress
and enlightenment with others................In the name of peace,
love, and brotherhood, faith and morals are questioned, compromised,
and even rejected. And much of this under the appearance of the
Pope's approval and blessing. ...Our Lord on August 15, 1971:
Satan has done his work of folly well. Yes, satan has gone into
the highest positions in my House, but he will not triumph. In
the final count the victory will be with Us, for he will only
proceed as My Father deems.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG)
- My child and My children, you understand it is a known fact
that when the morals of a country fall, that country will be destroyed
in one way or another. Wars are always a punishment for man's
sins. ............So I ask you, My children, to keep a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your world and through your
churches, and even if you have to approach your pastors................Many
pastors have fallen away from the truth, and they are like black
sheep now among the white sheep. However, I say to you, prayer
can overrule all evil. Keep a constant vigilance of prayer going
throughout your country and the world. It is the only resort now
that you have against the evil.
OCTOBER 6, 1992
(MSG) - You will continue to pray a vigil of prayer for the clergy
of the world. Darkness has descended upon My Son's churches upon
earth. Whatever shall become of you all in the chaos that is fast
coming to your country and other nations of the world! There will
soon enter upon your world a despot. Number two I call him. But
many have named him, and the Book of life refers to him as the
Antichrist....................Yes, My children, you will recognize
him by his deeds. Many will sell their souls to him to get to
the head, but all that is rotten will fall eventually. No matter
what the struggles to keep the light in your country and the world,
you will go forward as soldiers of light, carrying your banner
Faithful and True, in the face of adversity.
CHURCH OF MAN (SATAN)
V O L U M E I
AUGUST 21, 1970
- Tear down the temples put up by satan, for there are many in
your Country. Store up your graces, My children, for the final
battle! (vol I page 13)
DECEMBER 7, 1970
- The temples of satan have been developed in your City the past
year. These temples will mushroom throughout your Country. The
man of perdition goes about your Country to plant his seed for
destruction. (vol I page 18)
JULY 1, 1971
- All men who choose to honor Our adversary, Lucifer, all men
who choose to place temples of honor to him have already descended
halfway to the pit, where they will soon fall! You will not set
up temples to dishonor your God. (vol I page 30)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972
- The Church of the Living God vs. the church of man. Condemn
not My House, My children, I gave it to you with peace and purity.
It is man, in influence of satan, using fallen leaders, who seek
to defy and defile Me and My House! Those who remain in the Light
will recognize this truth. These loosed demons (out of hell) can
be driven away by the guardians, the angels, assigned to My House
to defend My House! Yes, even those who have fallen from grace
will be rescued if they repent of their ways now and turn back
to Us! Soon there will be a sword placed upon the world. (vol
I page 43)
JUNE 8, 1972
- Forged documents are coming out of Rome. The enemies within
Holy Church seek to place the papacy and Pope Paul in a bad light;
to place the blame on him, in an attempt to tear down the papacy
and set up an international religion and not of Jesus Christ.
Many are accepting as sheep going to the slaughter. They neither
pray nor try to patch the cracks. Many are in need of awakening
to the truth. (vol I page 53)
OCTOBER 6, 1972
- I give you the vision of what is to come upon your earth in
the final days: Jesus raised his hands and said: Look upon My
hands and know that you intend now to crucify My Mystical Body!
Woe to a world that has placed up man as an object of worship
and cast aside his God! The Eternal Flames will reach many! (vol
I page 69)
NOVEMBER 20, 1972
- Those who cast aside the laws of their God; men of science,
ever seeking but never reaching the Truth! Man shall not set up
as a point and object the worship of the human! (vol I page 71)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974
- Your country, My child, and the countries of earth have become
cesspools of sin! Your leaders are worshipping the creation of
their hands. They seek power to destroy! They will set up among
themselves a church of man, excluding My Son from among them!
Satan shall sit upon the altars of My Son's Houses! Pray, pray,
My child, desperate days face mankind. (vol I page 261)
NOVEMBER 1, 1975
- Peace! The world cries peace when there is no peace, love, when
there is no love. Why have you cast aside the words given in the
Book of Life, your Bible? The Eternal Father gave you the plan
for your future in the Book. Why do you change it? Because you
do not agree with the word of your God! You must change it to
suit your carnal natures! You are setting yourselves fast to build
a Church of man and not a Church of God. What will you gain, for
your Church of man shall be given to satan, eternal damnation.
Those who are misled shall be given the road back to the light.
Prayer and penance are much needed at this time. The leaders are
scattering the flock. Do not think your heart is not known, Our
clergy, in Heaven. The Eternal Father watches your actions, your
behavior, you misguidance, and your selling your souls for silver!
(vol I page 434)
DECEMBER 6, 1975
- There must be change, My children, but a change back to reality
and Tradition. My Son has given you a true foundation but many
come now with axes and they chop away. They seek to build a Church
without spirit, a church of man. The walls will crumble, the earth
will shake. The Eternal Father will send His Wrath upon mankind.
(vol I page 450)
I do not have to repeat anew the
warnings given to you in the past. You will act upon these warnings
and restore My House. I have given you a firm foundation of faith.
What are your building now, churches of man? All that is rotten
will fall. A Church in darkness wears a band of death about it.
(vol I page 451)
DECEMBER 24, 1975
- Rome, the Eternal City, what manner of Faith do you give yourself?
Tears and blood, sorrow, no joy, but darkness, darkness of the
spirit! The forces, the red forces, My children, shall spread
throughout Rome! Can you not pray and do penance to hold back
the darkness? Pastors, you must now do great penance! Get down
on your knees! Humility, My pastors, holiness and piety! Tradition!
What are you building among yourselves but a church of man, eliminating
My Son and the light! Bishops, awaken from your slumber! I repeat,
My children, My bishops, shall you be obedient to sin? Shall you
unite and destroy your Faith with the ultimate destruction of
soul? My Son gave you your Faith. He gave you the course, a simple
plan to follow. He gave you your first leaders. They wrote down
the plan from Heaven into your Bible! Every man seeks novelty,
interpreting for his own satisfaction! All manner of delusion
and complication, novelty! For what? For the ultimate destruction
of your Faith? Sheep running and scattering, Churches closing
their doors! Why? Because you have replaced the light with darkness.
(vol I page 455)
DECEMBER 31, 1975
- The Eternal City of Rome must now take action by those in rule,
the cardinals and the bishops, to restore this city to the light.
Those who seek to build a church of man must be removed by the
power of excommunication given to those who rule or representatives
in My Houses, churches, upon earth. (vol I page 463)
JUNE 5, 1976
- Bishops in My Son's House, Church, you have gone astray. You
have scattered Our sheep. You have joined with all manner of heretics
and false teachers. You started with good intentions in your Council,
but you became deluded in your search for peace and brotherhood.
You allowed all manner of error to creep slowly into My Son's
House, Church. You must understand that you are setting in motion
the formation of a World Council of Churches, but it will not
be the Church of My Son. It will be church of man, a church without
the true foundation. (vol I page 497)
OCTOBER 2, 1976
- Through countless earth-years, My children, I have wandered
among you. The Eternal Father has sent Me as a Mediatrix, between
God and man, bringing you a warning from Heaven. It is a simple
message of faith, My children. In the knowledge, the all-knowing
knowledge of the Eternal Father, He foresaw the days ahead and
tried to prepare you, My children, for these days. Prophets were
sent among you, and what have you done with their message? You
have cast it aside, disowned your prophets, your saints, and you
have decided among you, O you of little faith, to bring about
the rise of another church that is not of My Son. Your building,
in your arrogance, a church of man. You scurry to and fro, crying
love, love, brotherhood, and friendship, but the words come not
from the heart but from the mouth! (vol I page 542,543)
OCTOBER 6, 1976
- Many priests, bishops, cardinals in My Son's House need prayers
from the laity that they may be strong enough not to fall into
the plan of the third worlders, who are also known, My child,
as the one worlders. They seek to destroy My Son's Church and
build one on the creation of man. My Son has cried many times
great tears of sorrow and has said: Will there be any faith left
when I return? Will I find even a small flickering of faith left
in their hearts when I return? It truly rains teardrops from
Heaven! (vol I page 548)
DECEMBER 7, 1976
- Those who have been given the rule within My Son's House are
using their knowledge to twist and pervert the teachings of the
prophets. What manner of church are you building now, O mankind,
as you fast plunge to your destruction? A church of man that will
have no resemblance to the Church My Son left for you! (vol I
page 565)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977
- The little candles of light are not numerous in your country.
The candles are being extinguished in other countries throughout
your world, but I say unto you: In this battle, the gates of hell
shall not prevail against My Church, for I am your foundation!!
You shall not build of man into a church. You shall build a church
of man rejecting the cross of your Christ! (vol II page 21)
MARCH 18, 1977
- You must pray, pray much for your Holy Father. He suffers greatly
from disobedience of those under him in his rule. Yes, My child,
it appears now that there is a form of insanity taking place in
Rome, for priests, prelates, cardinals and bishops, are running
around with their heads in a fog. They have great plans, My child,
to build a new church, a church of man. But My Son has other plans.
Their time is running out. (vol II page 27)
My child, My children, this new church
they are building but no angels help to build, only demons; they
are building a church of man, using as a foundation the basic
carnal nature of mankind. There is nothing beautiful of spirit;
it is all humanistic, My child, modernistic. And what are they
doing but they are building the church of man with satan as the
director! (vol II page 27,28)
APRIL 2, 1977
- We see a church of man being built, a church that has no angels
guiding it, a church that is made, as the true Church of My Son
is being chipped away at, undermined by My Son's own priests!
How dare you debase My Son's heritage by allowing all evil to
be condoned in His Church! (vol II page 31)
APRIL 9, 1977
- My children, what manner of abomination is being committed in
My Son's House? Can you not cry with Him, suffer with Him on His
way to the Cross? No! Demons have entered into My Son's House.
They claim the human body to use them to defile My Son's House
until evil men of the cross are setting a church up now, a church
of man with no angels guiding them, with no supernatural intervention
from Heaven guiding them. The church of man shall be built on
naturalism, modernism, and humanism. (vol II page 35)
JULY 15, 1977 - There are many children without the light now, and the measure of responsibility is with My shepherds. You must understand that the supreme and first commandment of all and to all mankind is honor to his God, and the Eternal Father is your God in the Trinity. If you reject Him, if you build a new house, a new church upon earth, it will not have the angels at your side; you will have demons of humanism and modernism to your own destruction..............There was great unity in My House upon earth, but man became unpious, unholy, and with itching ears he has listened to doctrines set forth by demons. Now, My shepherds, you will close your ears to your modernists and those who seek change and who will build a church of man. No, I say unto you, this shall not be tolerated by the Eternal Father! You are permitted a long rule for reason. .....
The Eternal Father hopes, in His
merciful heart, that you will come out of your slumber and see
the light. You are walking in darkness. (vol II page 65)
OCTOBER 1, 1977
- Because of the major role the city of New York plays in the
world governments and the governing of your nation, the United
States, My child, it is for this reason that satan chose that
area for his start to bring into your country a full overthrow
of Christian belief. It is his endeavor now to replace the Church
of My Son with the church of satan. ............. Already, because
too few listened to and acted upon My counsel in the past, already,
My children, your nation is covered now by secret societies and
churches of satan, being founded by the master of deceit and the
father of all liars, the prince of darkness, satan. (vol II page
90)
OCTOBER 6, 1977
- Man has sought to become a king among nations. And man has sought
to destroy My Church upon earth. And he builds himself one that
cannot be recognized as being in the light, for it is a church
now of humanism. And woe to those who have set themselves up to
worship idols, and have commanded through satanism. My children,
have you all progressed into insanity? For surely you have been
counseled in the past that sin is insanity, and you now shall
reap your own harvest in suffering. (vol II page 94)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977
- My children, little by little, step by step, the road has been
paved to the erection and construction of a new church. It will
not be a church of My Son. No angels shall direct the building.
It will be a church of man. But as man builds his monument to
man, I assure you, My children, the Eternal Father, the Godhead,
shall bring down that false church of man. You are testing His
patience to the limit. How long do you think He will persevere
in His suffering for an unworthy generation of sinners? (vol II
page 105)
DECEMBER 7, 1977
- There is now a conspiracy of evil in your country, the United
States. Recognize the meaning of Illuminati. It has been now interwoven
with the churches of satan and the massive international organization
of Wicca. They are now fighting My Son's Church. It is satan who
guides them, for these people who have entered into the organization
of Wicca and Illuminati, they are dead bodies and dead souls!
(vol II page 109)
DECEMBER 31, 1977
- You cast aside the counsel of your peers. You cast aside the
counsel of the founding fathers of My Son's Church as He gave
them to you! You build a new church of man. No angels helped you
cement that foundation, because My Son is nowhere around. O ye
of little faith, whatever shall become of you! (vol II page 112)
For gold and silver anew you sell
Me out, I say unto you, your father is satan! You are liars! You
are murderers! And now you bring the church of satan within My
portals! Worshippers of evil! Lovers of false gods! (vol II page
114)
MARCH 25, 1978
- The destruction of souls accelerates. My children, can you not
recognize the path you have allowed yourself to go upon? It is
a way of destruction. It is not the way as given by My Son, for
you have set yourselves to build a new church, a church for the
glorification of man. (vol II page 135)
MAY 30, 1978
- My children, as parents you must now protect your children.
My Son's House, His church, is being stripped of all holiness,
the destruction of its doctrine, tradition, paving the way for
the ultimate goal of those in the power of satan to destroy My
Son's Church by creating a church of man. They are rebuilding
slowly while awaiting the next conclave. They are preparing the
way for the destruction of all mankind, for when the Church and
the world become as one, you will know that the end has come for
mankind. (vol II page 156)
JUNE 18, 1978
- I gave you a simple way, the rule to follow. You were set with
doctrines and tradition, and in your arrogance you rise above
the founding Fathers of My Church and seek to build another religion
and a new church, and you are putting it together without any
help from the angels of light, for you have employed denizens
of darkness. (vol II page 168)
JULY 15, 1978
- My children, there are many among you in My Son's ecclesiastical
bodies that seek to build a new church upon earth. It is not supernatural
if is a natural church of man! (vol II page 170)
JULY 25, 1978
- My children, continue to follow the counsel of My Mother. All
of the saints and the angels of Heaven shall come with you to
aid you in this war of the spirits. Soon My clergy must make a
decision; shall they build now a church of man and replace My
House upon earth. No angels are guiding their movements. No angels
shall rescue them from the pits of hell. Awaken, My clergy, for
your heads are in the clouds! (vol II page 175)
AUGUST 5, 1978
- Do not try to set up a new church of man upon earth, for a church
in darkness wears a band of death about it. (vol II page 179)
AUGUST 14, 1978
- Pastors, cardinals, bishops in My House, My Church, what are
you trying to rebuild, a church of man without angels to guide
you? What are you trying to renew? Has not My Church, My House,
withstood all of the trials of time? It will stand again, but
My concern as your God is the number of souls that are being lost
to Heaven in this trial! The Eternal Father does not want one
sheep lost to Him! Each and every soul upon earth is precious
to Him. (vol II page 181)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978
- My child and My children, I need not repeat to you the necessity
to retain tradition a value, a safeguard from the eruption of
My Son's Church, a schism, a division within My Son's House upon
earth. I cry unto you, your Mother, as I hasten back and forth
bringing you the Message, the counsel from Heaven. You must recognize,
bishops, cardinals and pastors, you must recognize what is happening
now in My Son's House. There is being rebuilt before your very
eyes another religion, another church of man. No angels are helping
in this building. (vol II page 186)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978
- I say unto you unless you turn back now, bishops and cardinals,
and restore My Son's House. Do not be prideful. It is too late
for false pride! You must admit your errors. turn back and start
over! You were given a simple rule to follow. These rules were
given to you and written for you in the Book of Life, your Bible.
You have chosen in your arrogance and pride to cast aside these
teachings and to build another church upon earth, a church of
man. You are building it without the help of the angels. (vol
II page 189)
OCTOBER 6, 1978
- I have asked you in the past to refrain from rebuilding My Church
into a church for man. I am the foundation! I have set down the
rules, and of all the disobedient cries, of disobedience against
My little ones, it is you who are disobedient to your God!! It
is you who have been disobedient to the Vicars I sent to you!
and it is you who have murder in your heart! (vol II page 199)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978
- No, O men of the cross, whatever has happened to you in your
profession? You prefer the worldly life of riches and power, you
partake of sins of the flesh; you mislead by teaching doctrines
of demons. You do not exercise discipline among your own. Better
that you have a few with quality than a quantity of nothingness!
You will not build in Rome nor in the world a church of man given
over to humanism and modernism. (vol II page 200)
Yes, My child, as My Mother has told
you in the past, man is endeavoring to build a new church upon
earth, a church of naturalism and of free conscience, a church
of satan. (vol II page 203)
MAY 23, 1979
- I am your God, and I say unto you: Continue to change My Church
and you will fall! You will build a secular church, bringing in
all, even heretics, even homosexuals. All aberrations condemned
by the Eternal Father, you will permit in the name of humanism.
Nay, no! I say unto you as your God. You will be given a short
reign, for I consider you then an abomination, and as such you
will be removed. (vol II page 215)
JULY 14, 1979
- There are many false prophets now teaching doctrines of demons.
You must protect your children from falling in with them. False
prophets trying to build a church of man; and no angels to guide
them. A church of secularism, humanism, socialism, communism,
and satanism. (vol II page 231)
DECEMBER 24, 1979
- O My children, you cannot build another church, a house upon
earth; for you are building it without the assistance of the light
and the angels. You are building a church that will take in all
manner of heretics and antichrists. ..............O My children,
are you so prideful that you believe you can allow bad fruit to
come into your vineyards; and that you will nourish them with
your human intellect and ripen this fruit so that it will stay
upon the vine? I say unto you: This will not be! My Son is the
vinedresser, and all that is rotten must fall! (vol II page 268)
OCTOBER 2, 1980
- I give you a final warning from the Eternal Father. You will
turn back and restore the earth. You will turn back and restore
My Church upon earth. You shall not set up a new church of man,
for I shall destroy it. You shall see nations disappear from the
earth in seconds. (vol II page 274)
JUNE 13, 1981
- My child and My children, much cannot be in discourse with you
at this time. But I must stress the urgency of your remaining
in My Son's Church regardless of the turmoil. I stress again this
urgency for the salvation of your soul. You must not tear it asunder.
You cannot run hither and yon setting up a new church, for to
divide is to conquer, and that is the plan of satan against My
Son. (vol II page 286)
JUNE 18, 1981
- We see all manner of confusion, experimentation. There is no
unity now in spirit. For man in the clergy has taken upon himself
to set up My Son's Church to his own pursuits, his own man-given
knowledge of intellect, without the spirit. For much of this intellect
is being directed by satan and not by God. (vol II page 291)
CHURCHES, WORLD COUNCIL OF
V O L U M E I
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975
- I must warn you at this time as your Mother that you must remove
yourself from this gathering of world Churches.........My Son
has given you His true Church upon your earth. All others have
left it as they could not follow the rule. As protesters, they
have cast aside the truth...........You must not compromise your
Church by bringing in the measure of humanism and modernism for
you have opened the door to satan...............I shall clarify
My former statement, My child. You must remove yourself from the
World Council of Churches. It has become an instrument of the
adversary.......... There is but one Church, My children, the
Church as set forth by My Son under Peter. (vol I page 414)
JUNE 5, 1976
- Bishops in My Son's House, Church, you have gone astray. You
have scattered Our sheep. You have joined with all manner of heretics
and false teachers. You started with good intentions in your Council,
but you became deluded in your search for peace and brotherhood.
You allowed all manner of error to creep slowly into My Son's
House, Church. You must understand that you are setting in motion
the formation of a World Council of Churches, but it will not
be the Church of My Son. It will be a church of man, a church
without the true foundation. (vol I page 497)
CLERGY
- See Priesthood: Clergy
CLOTHING
- See Dress
COMMANDMENTS
V O L U M E I
DECEMBER 7, 1970
- You agents of satan murder! Yes, you murder the little ones.
Next you will choose the aged and infirm. Vile vipers of the abyss!!
The command of the Father is thou shalt not kill! Hell will overflow
with your souls. (vol I page 18)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971
- Satan has opened the abyss many of his henchmen are among you,
for every knock on your door, evil knocks on your door. Guard
your homes well, let not those enter, if you value the salvation
of your souls. Guard your children well! Teach them the laws of
God. Live a life with Christ and you will be saved. Pray for those
who reap what they have sown! (vol I page 22)
MARCH 25, 1972
- Permissiveness, My children, is destroying you. Laxity of discipline
and parents involving themselves in excessive worldly pundits.
What has become of the dedication? What has become of the laws
given to you by Our prophets? They have been changed to suit the
weakness of man. How long do you think I can hold back My Son's
hand?.......(vol I page 45)
You have broken the laws of your
God! We see despicable women who desecrate their homes! What has
your love of the flesh, your sins of the flesh, gained you, but
hell! The laws of your God were given you for a reason. What example
do you give your children? Do not call yourself 'mother', call
them harlots of the world! You are as dung in the streets! (vol
I page 46)
APRIL 1, 1972
- A country that loses its morality has placed one foot already
in hell! Servitude, desecration, all will reap what has been sown.
Floods, great heat; you will have visited upon you a plague! Recognize
now, the finger of death will be placed upon your earth. When
you pass through this crisis many will be cleansed! Understand,
My children, that science cannot strive above the laws of His
God. (vol I page 49)
MARCH 18, 1973
- Man will not defy the laws of God without going unpunished.
You are a perverse generation, and you call the hand of punishment
down fast upon you. (vol I page 85)
Love of your God, honor to your God, and following the rules set forth by your God shall not be a temporary habit, but must be inborn and a renewal complete. (vol I page 86)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973
- Man has accepted now in your country and throughout the earth,
a way of life that condones the breaking of all commandments of
the Father. Ah, the poor little ones that have been led astray
by bad example. Sin has become a way of life in your country.
We have begged for your good example of prayer, sacrifice, and
atonement. (vol I page 128)
Moses: Time does not change the commandments
of your God...............Moses: Time does not change the commandments
of your God. The rule must be followed with discipline. (vol I
page 129)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974
- The Eternal Father has set before you the rule and discipline
for your salvation. They will not be replaced by the rules created
by man to feed his worldly inclinations for soul-destruction.
Many will sell their souls to satan to get to the head. (vol I
page 166)
MARCH 24, 1974
- Moses: These are the Commandments of the Father. Break one and
the gates of hell are open to you. You will place these in prominence
in your household. Would I be upon your earth now I would shed
bitter tears of sorrow, for I see among you a renewal of despicable
abominations that caused me great sorrow upon earth. You hasten
the coming of the Lord High God upon you. The wrath of the Father
shall descend upon you. (vol I page 180)
JUNE 8, 1974
- The soul is entered into the body at the moment of conception.
We abhor, We will not tolerate the murders of the unborn. Mankind
seeks a terrible chastisement, far beyond what his human mind
or sight can ever conceive, for his actions against the creation
of the Father. Murderers! As such you break the commandment of
the Father, Thou Shalt Not Kill. Damnation, eternal damnation,
will be the lot of all who take part in the murders of the unborn!
Repent now of your sins. Make restitution to the Father, for you
will be held accountable for the murders of the unborn. (vol I
page 210)
JUNE 15, 1974
- It is the will of the Father, My children, that I repeat to
you that all who have any part, even a small measure, in the murder
of the unborn shall be condemned eternally in the abyss. The Commandments
of the Most High God your Father in Heaven were not given to cast
aside but it is a rule of discipline and these commandments must
be adhered to. Thou shalt not kill a creation of your Father!
(vol I page 214)
JULY 25, 1974
- The commandments of the Father have been cast aside. They were
given so that your world would live in peace and flourish. Now
you seek to invite Exterminatus! Exterminatus, My child, is the
demon of destruction known as war. (vol I page 236)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975
- My child, you perceive rightly. It is only in following the
rules set down by the Eternal Father that man can find a true
peace of heart. There will be no peace upon your earth without
My Son. Reject Him, and you will reject Me. You will follow the
rules given by the Eternal Father, your Commandments, for if you
break these rules, you will break your spirit. (vol I page 337)
MARCH 22, 1975
- You must hasten to remove the blindness and error from My children's
hearts! Send My Message, My child, fast out to the world. It is
an error to say to My children and misguide them, that they may
break the rule and enter the Kingdom of Heaven. This is not true,
My children. Grace and merit shall bring you to the Kingdom. Grace
and merit. You have a free will to make your choice. Pray for
the light. Nothing is impossible to the Father. (vol I page 346)
JULY 25, 1975
- The Eternal Father, My children, has given you a simple lesson
of life. The Commandments must be followed, for shall you break
one, you break them all. (vol I page 387)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- The Commandments of the Eternal Father that have been given
to you through generations must be followed with discipline! You
will not compromise your Faith! You will not compromise and gain
souls for you are turning them away from My Son's House! Awaken
from your slumber! My pastors, you have fallen asleep! (vol I
page 392)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975
- The commandments given through the ages by the Eternal Father
must be brought forward to be studied and obeyed. Many are misled.
Do not judge them, but seek first their spirit. Many are misled;
they do not know their God. You cannot love without knowing. Who
will bring this knowledge to the innocent children? (vol I page
408)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975
- Do not be swayed by the fallacy that all will enter into the
Kingdom of Heaven, for only 'many', My children, shall enter into
the Kingdom of Heaven if they follow the rule. (vol I page 414)
JANUARY 31, 1976
- The Commandments of the Father were given and no one shall cast
them aside. What man, in his pride, has the knowledge from the
Holy Spirit to change these Commandments to satisfy his basic
fallen nature?...........You ask, My child, about penance. What
more can I bring you in direction? There are laws of God and laws
of man. The Eternal Father demands penance! The Eternal Father
demands a strict rule, with no alterations and no novelty implemented
upon His words. You shall not rationalize the Commandments of
the Eternal Father! They are simple and they are to be followed
simply in faith. (vol I page 468)
MARCH 18, 1975
- Parents must give to their children the knowledge of the Commandments
of the Father. No excuse is accepted for casting aside these commandments.
(vol I page 342)
OCTOBER 6, `1975
- You owe, My children, no allegiance to man who offends the Eternal
Father. The Commandments given by the Eternal Father must be followed.
(vol I page 429)
JANUARY 31, 1976
- You ask, My child, about penance. What more can I bring you
in direction? There are laws of God and laws of man. The Eternal
Father demands penance! The Eternal Father demands a strict rule,
with no alterations and no novelty implemented upon His words.
You shall not rationalize the Commandments of the Eternal Father!
They are simple and they are to be followed simply in faith. (vol
I page 468)
Because My Son died, My children,
upon His cross, He opened the gates of Heaven that were shut to
mankind at the fall of the first parents. He died for mankind,
but shall those who reject Him by sin and breaking the Commandments
of the Eternal Father, without penance, enter! No! Sadly, My child,
My children, they cannot enter. (vol I page 469)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976
- The destruction of moral values, the turning from the Commandments
of the Eternal Father, all has happened in the past to bring destruction
and a change, just as now you proceed to your own destruction
in the name of 'change'! (vol I page 472)
You have a false security that all
is forgiven. But is this not sheer insanity in sin to believe
that you may offend your God and break His rules and enter? What
manner of life would there be in your Kingdom of Heaven? All will
enter by merit! Many shall enter through suffering and atonemnet
and penance! (vol I page 474)
APRIL 17, 1976
- Shall a warning be given to mankind? I say yes, My children!
Many minor warnings have been given in the past and have gone
by unnoticed, by the Eternal Father to awaken mankind. There shall
be tremors and earthquakes in places never before seen or experienced.
Great tidal waves shall descend upon a great city and it shall
fall into the sea. Measure for measure, mankind shall be given
his Chastisement to cleanse him in a crucible of suffering because
of his aberrations, because of his arrogance, because of his turning
from the truth, the light, and from the Commandments given by
the Eternal Father. (vol I page 482)
MAY 15, 1976
- Man shall not judge My Church on the actions of man, for man
now is taking it and building a church for man, not to honor his
God, the Eternal Father, not to honor and prepare his soul for
the entrance over the veil! No! He is now wasting valuable trine
in promoting a mode of humanism and modernism. You are feeding
the nature, the carnal nature of mankind, while you are starving
their spirit. (vol I page 488)
JUNE 18, 1976
- Pastors, you go farther from your Faith. You deny the existence
of the supernatural, for you are building a church of man. Turn
back, for you will be forced to turn back by My Son. Because of
your impiety, because of your immorality, and because of your
atheistic leanings, My children, your country shall enter a great
crucible of suffering. Many countries of your earth shall be cleansed
by trial. (vol I page 505)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976
- The good books of truth are still among you. Pray for the light,
My children, and be guided so that you may not fall into error,
for man is now creating a church of man, and it will not be the
Church of man, and it will not be the Church of truth and the
light, the Church of My Son, Jesus. Man is bending His cross to
suit his carnal human nature. (vol I page 530)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1976
- THE TEN COMMANDMENTS: I. I am the Lord thy God: Thou shalt
not have strange gods before Me...........II. Thou shalt not
take the name of the Lord thy God in vain............III. Remember
thou keep holy the Sabbath Day.............IV. Honor thy father
and mother............V. Thou shalt not kill............VI.
Thou shalt not commit adultery. ...........VII. Thou shalt not
steal............VIII. Thou shalt not bear false witness against
thy neighbor...........IX. Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's
wife. ..........X. Thou shall not covet thy neighbor's goods.
..............Know that all who disobey the laws of the Father
and set upon mankind laws of error, laws that are made by mankind
the creature, and not the Creator, shall receive the same judgment
as the fallen angels. (vol I page 541)
OCTOBER 2, 1976
- There must be a complete reversal in the manner in which you
have set out to tear asunder My Son's Church and His teachings.
In blindness of heart, you have taken the rules and remade them
to suit the basic carnal nature of mankind. You must bring back
the commandments of your God, as given to you by the prophets,
without addition, without change, and without the rationalization
of sin! (vol I page 543)
And why, My children, will this great
war come about, the war to end all wars? Because of man's sin!
In your country, My children, in your seminaries in the United
States and Canada, My children, and the world, you have professors
now so steeped in sin, they who call themselves My Son's chosen
priests, they are vile sons of satan who are now rationalizing
sin! The commandments shall not be looked at objectively and given
to excuses, to reasoning to condone sin! No, My children, it is
the minds poisoned by satan that spread this filth and error,
this distortion of doctrine, this distortion of Tradition, and
this distortion of your Faith! (vol I page 543,544)
The knowledge of the world beyond
the veil, the knowledge is being lost to your children. Bring
prayer into your homes! Teach your children the basic foundation
of their Faith, the commandments of your God! Do not water them
down. Do not rationalize sin, for without your guidance, parents,
your children shall be lost. (vol I page 546)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - There is only one way, My children, when you turn from your God it is down. Moral corruption, casting aside the Commandments of your God, building and worshipping idols of man, paganism in My House, leaders that have given themselves to satan; shall I continue to list for you all of the abominations committed by mankind until I cry out that you have become a degenerate generation and you call upon yourselves a baptism of fire? (vol I page 568)
V O L U M E I I
MAY 30, 1977
- The rules for mankind were given from the beginning by the Eternal
Father. They were commands from Heaven, commands to be followed
through love; commands that only can be followed through love,
for fear does not beget love. If you will seek the light, you
will not remain in darkness; but if you prefer, in your human
frailty, to remain in the darkness, shall you have the time to
come out of this darkness? (vol II page 52)
JUNE 4, 1977
- I counsel all leaders of governments to return to the commands
of his God. I counsel all mothers and fathers, heads of households,
to return to the commands of their God. I counsel every man, woman
and child who hears My voice and the Message from Heaven to do
penance, atonement and sacrifice, if not for yourselves, but to
save your priests, your clergy, your cardinals, your bishops who
are fast heading into the abyss. (vol II page 54)
JUNE 16, 1977
- My children, you cannot have the light within you unless you
partake of the Bread of Life. Come to Me in all of the tabernacles
of your world. Refresh yourself in the Blood of the Lamb. What
is there in common between the light and the darkness? Have you
chosen your way? The way given from Heaven is a simple way; the
rules have been laid down. And why do you make your own rules
now and change the rules to suit your carnal human nature? And
for what? To bring about your own destruction! (vol II page 59)
JULY 15, 1977
- All who have received the Holy Spirit have consecrated hands.
And I say unto you none but legally ordained priests in My House
shall bring My Body to the multitudes! No woman shall stand in
the Holy Place! No woman shall vie or compete for ruler ship in
My House. I say unto you, you must go back and read the commandments
of the Eternal Father; you must go back and read the rules that
Paul gave to you. You cast him aside and you write another book,
a bible, a tome; you write it to suit your own basic carnal, human
nature...............The way has been given to you in the past,
and the way does not change. It is a simple way. The rules have
been given, and you change them for what? Were they imperfect?
Have you considered the Eternal Father to be in error? I say unto
you, you will return My House to its former status of honor, glory,
discipline. You must, as shepherds, give a firm example of holiness.
(vol II page 65)
JULY 25, 1977
- My children, parents, I caution you again to take full charge
of the rearing of your children by good example and giving them
a true foundation for their faith, by bringing to your children
the knowledge of their God and the commandments of their God.
(vol II page 79)
AUGUST 13, 1977
- You must understand that no man, or woman, or child of conscionable
age will be gathered by satan unless it is of his own free will,
for he has rejected grace and given himself to satan. He has disobeyed
all of the laws of the most high God in Heaven. And there is a
penance for disobedience, as there was a penance when the angels,
the highest angels of Heaven, and Lucifer himself was cast from
the realm of the Kingdom of God for his disobedience and arrogance.
(vol II page 78)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977
- I have asked you in the past to take yourselves out of your
world that has been given to satan. You may be in the world, but
you must not join it in its corruption and loss of Faith. If you
wish to attain the glories and joys of the Eternal Kingdom of
Heaven, you must merit it with discipline and by following the
rules. (vol II page 84)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977
- The commandments of the Eternal Father must be followed. The
commandments of the Eternal Father will not be changed to suit
the basic carnal nature of human mankind. No, I say unto you,
you scholars of great renown, you will not escape the abyss, you
who go about bringing satan into My Son's House! You with itching
ears who run about seeking change; you who seek to make yourselves
god! Remember the lesson of old. Lucifer, Luciel, he followed
the same path, avarice, vanity, and he was banished. And I say
unto you, My children, as you sow, so shall you reap! (vol II
page 102)
DECEMBER 7, 1977
- The rules, My way was given to you in the Book of Love and Life,
your Bible, and I say unto you, you who go about adding to My
words and making changes, I shall visit upon you every plague
that has been written in the Book of Life! (vol II page 111)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978
- The Eternal Father created man in His image. He set rules for
the welfare of mankind and his progress to return triumphantly
to Heaven. You are all but pilgrims upon earth. Your time is short.
(vol II page 118)
MARCH 15, 1978
- The commandments of God will not be changed to satisfy the carnal
nature of mankind, a major Warning that will bring many
back to the Faith. But many shall still see and not believe.
(vol II page 127)
MAY 13, 1978
- The Ten Commandments given by the Eternal Father were given
for reason and must be followed by all, or you will set upon yourselves
a firm and sorrowful judgment from the Eternal Father. (vol II
page 145)
JULY 25, 1978
- It must be known to all mankind that life upon earth is but
a temporary existence, but life off the earth in the spiritual
world is forever, a realm of complete consciousness and knowing.
All emotion shall be governed by the Eternal Father, with peace
and joy in knowing. This beautiful world of consciousness, eternal,
must be gained in merit upon earth by following completely the
directions from Heaven given through time upon earth. As pilgrims
upon earth, My children, you must follow the rules given by the
Eternal Father for your salvation, the commandments of your God.
(vol II page 174,175)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978
- My child and My children, make it known to all that the road
to Heaven was never easy, but you can make it much easier upon
yourselves and your families if you follow the rules, if you follow
the commandments from the Eternal Father. The changes that We
see taking place in My House and upon earth are not good, for
many, many souls are falling into hell. And a great measure of
responsibility now is with those who have been called to the holy
orders, who have given themselves to represent Me upon earth.
Shall I say that I have found many Judas's now within My House?
Cannot this situation be changed?............
NOVEMBER 25, 1978
- You must understand that the merciful heart of the Father is
always extended to you. You must pray more, you must read and
act upon the Commandments of your God. They can neither be added
to, nor modified, nor taken away. The ten major Commandments must
be followed. And I can see, My children, that you break many now,
and ask for the hand of a wrathful God upon you. Thou shall not
kill! Thou shalt not steal! Thou shalt not worship false gods!
Thou shalt not commit adultery! Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's
wife! Thou shalt not covet thy neighbors goods! My children, on
and on I could go on, enumerating the major sins of mankind. However,
since you understand that sin is insanity, to those in the light,
it will appear as though the world has become a snakepit. And
I say "snake" for it well covers the work of Lucifer.
(vol II page 207)
DECEMBER 7, 1978
- Yes, My child, Lucifer was always a murderer. Lucifer promotes
the breaking of the rules and the Commandments of your God. That
is why We always tell you, My children; Lucifer cannot remain
hidden, even though he promotes in your world a cover of ignorance
and a cover of darkness. And the cover that shall destroy many
is by casting aside the reality of the existence of demons and
the world beyond. (vol II page 209)
MAY 23, 1979
- I have warned you in the past, that as man rejects the commandments
of his God, all manner of sin and evil shall fall upon mankind;
murders, homosexuality, all aberrations of the flesh. The good
shall be persecuted, and the bad lauded as saviors of the world.
There shall enter many false prophets among you who preach and
give out doctrines of demons. (vol II page 213)
JUNE 2, 1979
- And I repeat again; all who become part of or condone homosexuality
shall be destroyed. All who become part of or condone abortion,
the murder of the young, shall be destroyed! All who seek to cast
out the discipline given by the Eternal Father in the Commandments,
the Ten Commandments from your God, they too, shall be destroyed!
All women who disport their bodies in nakedness, the flesh shall
burn! (vol II page 222)
JUNE 9, 1979
- Do not be deluded by those agents of hell, or those who have
been unwittingly and unsuspectingly become enmeshed with the agents
of hell. They will come to you with all seeming good intentions.
But remember, My children, that the road to hell is often paved
with good intentions. I say unto you now as your Mother, as a
Mediatrix between God and man, the commandments of the Eternal
Father must be followed: If you break one, you break them all!
(vol II page 224)
JUNE 18, 1979
- I give you, My children of the world, your protection. I give
you the sacramentals that are necessary for your protection in
the days ahead; the Rosary of prayer, beads of prayer to Heaven,
pearls of prayer to Heaven; the Scapular of faith to be worn constantly
and never removed from your earthly body. I give you anew the
commandments of your God as given from the beginning of time from
the Eternal Father in Heaven through His instruments, His holy
instruments upon earth. These commandments cannot be changed,
neither can they be subtracted from nor added to. They must be
followed precisely, for if you break one commandment, you break
them all in the eyes of your God, and restitution must be made
for these offenses of disobedience to the Eternal Father in Heaven.
These commandments were given to you to keep you safe from the
assaults of Lucifer, who seeks to break all of the commandments
of your God. (vol II page 226)
JULY 25, 1979
- I have requested many times that the word death be applied only
to the human body. For man, as created in the image of his God,
there is no death if he will accept the commandments of his Creator
and live his life upon earth as requested and directed by his
Creator. Man with his free will can also reject the beckoning
of Heaven and fall victim, willingly or unknowingly, to satan.
Those who go into the web of Lucifer unknowingly can be brought
out through the charity and prayers of another. (vol II page 235)
AUGUST 14, 1979
- My children, if you cast aside the commandments of the Eternal
Father and set up a new rule to live by, you are lost. If you
defy the Book of Life and Love, your Bible, and rewrite it to
suit your own basic, carnal nature, you are lost!! If you bring
false doctrines upon earth, the doctrine of demons, worshipping
false gods, worshipping Lucifer, you are lost!! (vol II page 242)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - You believe you can cast aside the commandments of the Eternal Father and exist in peace? No, My children, already your world has given full evidence of what happens when you become arrogant and prideful and seek to rule as little gods upon earth. You cast aside all religious foundation build new religions that are guided by false doctrines of humanism and modernism and satanism. Oh, My children, you never learn from your past, because you are now in a state far worse than in the times of Noe and Sodom. And what then shall be your fate? ..........
Oh My children, My Mother has cried
bitter tears of anguish, for She has been given full knowledge
of what is to be. She has tried to prepare you, to guide you through
countless earth-years of time, to counsel you upon the direction
to Heaven, but you have chosen in your arrogance and pride to
build new religions even belonging in hedonistic teachings and
false gods. For this, My children, you are abandoned to your folly,
and, as such, you will find that you will be brought to your knees,
forced to turn back from the wide road that you have chosen of
your own free will. (vol II page 265)
JUNE 18, 1981
- O My child and My children, how many earth-years have I traveled
to and fro. My voice relentlessly crying out to you to do penance,
atonement and make restitution to your God for the many offenses
that you have committed against the Commandments, which the Almighty
Father has handed down to you in order to guide you, so that you
will not lose your way and will come to Heaven. However, as it
was in the past, so it is today in your generation, that you have
learned nothing from your past and continue along the same path
to your own destruction. (vol II page 290)
JUNE 18, 1982
- And if any priest that tells you, My child, or My children,
as you have experienced, We have allowed you to experience this
for the betterment of all mankind; any priest that tells you that
you must love your neighbor first and God second, he is not a
true man of God nor is he a true Roman Catholic priest, not is
he a true minister of any denomination. Because the first Commandment
of God the Father is 'I am the Lord Thy God, thou shall not have
strange gods before Me.' Thou shall not take the name of the Lord
Thy God in vain. (vol II page 304)
M E S S A G E S
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG)
- I also ask that all of My children of the world review the Ten
Commandments...............In your tabloid, My child, I wish that
the Ten Commandments be printed in large letters for everyone
to see. I wish that they be printed in a manner that is like the
tables given to Moses. Remember, My child, the tabloid must have
the Ten Commandments...........And, also, remember, My children,
when you break one commandment, you break them all. So better
that you follow them through, and when you are ready to pass over
the veil you will not have to be gripped with fear if you cannot
have a priest on hand in your last moments upon earth. ..........You
see, My child and My children, not everyone is taken from the
earth with the final blessing from the priesthood. That is a special
grace.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG)
- You see, My children, satan always says; to divide is to conquer.
But I do not want to see the world in chaos, and a Third World
War. That is why, My child, I brought you here this evening, though
I knew that your strength was waning by this afternoon. There
is only one recourse for mankind now to avoid a Third World War,
that is more prayer, more penance, and more sacrifice for sinners.
Those who are keeping the laws of the Eternal Father must remember
that they have been given a special grace from the Father, and
have an obligation to seek out the souls who have not received
this grace. Bring them the light; show them the way. For they
are wandering, and they can be seduced in nature by others who
are not in the light. Your example, My children, is very important.
..............This I can tell you; because We are much grieved
as We look into the hearts of the mothers and fathers throughout
the world, not many are in the light. Families are disintegrating;
the state of marriage is becoming nullified. Now it is fashionable
in the United States, and many nations of the world, to discard
the Sacrament of Marriage and to live together in sin. This, My
child and My children, cannot be tolerated. Man must come back
to the laws of his God, or he will be destroyed.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG)
- Those who do not listen to Our pleading voices now throughout
the world, your time is growing short. We say that to all. For
those with the grace and knowledge of what is going to transpass-trespass
I should say, because, My child, in My mind I hear all of the
trespasses of mankind against the laws of his God.....That is
why I cannot hold My Father's hand nor Mine back any longer.
COMMON-LAW (MARRIAGE)
- See Marriage: common-law
COMMUNION
- See Eucharist
COMMUNISM
- See Russia: Brown Bear/Communism
COMPROMISE
V O L U M E I
AUGUST 15, 1971
- I bless you all, My children. You must, My children, understand
the love of parents and child. I love My Father as the children
should love their earthly father and the Father in Heaven. It
is sad to see the children who are being compromised in the web
of evil. You, who seek worldly gain, to destroy your souls, all
this will be left when you come over to Us. You cannot BUY your
way into the Kingdom! Your only passport is grace and love! (vol
I page 33)
APRIL 6, 1974
- Compromise, My children, what have you to gain when you compromise
your Faith? You divide yourselves so that the enemies of God will
conquer you! All who do not recognize My Son as the Christ in
the Father, in the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, they are not of
My Son and they are not worthy of the Kingdom of Heaven, and they
shall not enter the Kingdom of Heaven! This is from the Father.
(vol I page 185)
MAY 30, 1974
- My child, you will make it known to the Bishops of My Son's
House, those in authority, that they must not compromise. They
do not gather souls by compromising their Faith. They must stand
forth as symbols of chastity, piety and humbleness. What has become
of these virtues in mankind! (vol I page 205)
AUGUST 21, 1974
- It will be a command of the Father from Heaven, that all in
authority defrock and excommunicate those under their rule who
seek to destroy the Faith as given by the Father from Heaven...........
Those in rule will excommunicate and defrock all who enter and
make pact with the separated brethren and all who will compromise
the Faith with the separated brethren. (vol I page 248)
JULY 25, 1975
- A house that has set and divided itself cannot be on a firm
foundation. You will gain nothing by compromising with the enemy.
(vol I page 389)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- The Commandments of the Eternal Father that have been given
to you through generations must be followed with discipline! You
will not compromise your Faith! You will not compromise and gain
souls for you are turning them away from My Son's House! Awaken
from your slumber! My pastors, you have fallen asleep! (vol I
page 392)
Satan has placed many agents in high
positions in your governments of your world, and also in the Houses
of God. You will not compromise your Faith, My children. You will
not unite the world into one religion for it will not be that
given by My Son, but a religion of darkness. (vol I page 393)
AUGUST 21, 1975
- Now, Our Lady is coming forward and She's bending over. My child,
make it known to the world that man, children of God led astray:
You must not compromise your faith! There shall not be one world
and one religion at this time! For no man shall now gather the
flock. Not one man shall gather the flock together. This will
be done by My Son when he returns in the final stages of Armageddon!
(vol I page 404)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975
- You will find a great struggle in gathering the sheep, Pastors
of Light. You will not compromise your mission, Our Pastors..........
If you compromise by pleasing those who have set themselves to
rule you, and if you compromise without the love of God and accepting
the Will of God, and replacing it for the will of man, in obedience
that has been darkened by sin and false obedience, blind obedience.
Nooo! You shall not cast aside your God to please any man! (vol
I page 412)
You must not compromise your Church
by bringing in the measure of humanism and modernism, for you
have opened the door to satan. (vol I page 414)
NOVEMBER 1, 1975
- Children of the world, you have been given time to make amends
for the sins and abominations committed by both clergy and lay
peoples in the Houses of God throughout your world. You will no
longer defile the High Host of Heaven. The portals must be cleansed
of all sins and abominations. You must excommunicate, as clergy,
high clergy in Rome, all who seek to compromise the Faith, all
who enter into a compromising agreement with the agents of satan,
who seek to control mankind and the world without their God. You
shall not compromise your Faith; you will not save souls by compromise.
You must now start to clean your House, for if you do not listen
to this direction, you shall be cast out of the portals by the
Son of God. (vol I page 433,434)
MARCH 18, 1976
- We ask that all remain steadfast in their missions. We ask that
all do not leave now, but remain and await the Warning that will
soon be given to mankind. We do not wish a separation or a division
among Our sheep. You shall not compromise your Faith. You shall
not be misled into error in the name of humanism and modernization.
(vol I page 478)
JUNE 12, 1976
- Awaken from your slumber, O pastors! You have become soft and
pliable to the enemy, because you have fallen asleep on your job!
Compromise! Change! If you have a solid foundation and you were
given a solid foundation, what need is there to change, for you
seek then to change the foundation. You are chipping away at My
Church, you are burrowing like rats into the foundation of My
Church. (vol I page 503)
AUGUST 5, 1976
- Each soul that has reached, who has reached the age of reasoning
must give a good example of faith, modesty, purity of purpose,
and dedication to his God. There shall be no compromise of the
Faith in My Church. There shall be no compromise with the world,
for My Kingdom is not of your world. My Kingdom is eternal, My
ways are not the ways of the world. (vol I page 529)
DECEMBER 24, 1976
- Compromise! Compromise, and you shall fall! You shall not, O
pastors, win souls for the Kingdom of your God by compromise!!
Your example is poor! Shall you stand before My Son and say that
your teaching has been pure in His sight? Oh no, I say unto you!
You shall be cast into the fires of eternal damnation! (vol I
page 571)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 10, 1977 - The red forces are gaining momentum in the Eternal City of Rome. Your country, the United States, and other countries of the world, in their measures of compromise to communism, shall fall to communism. You cannot choose a middle road; you must go either to the right or to the left.................Compromise will bring you nothing but despair and sorrow. Compromise, My children, will enslave you. Recognize what is happening within your country and many countries of your world. The Bear is plundering now and has plans to plunge forward throughout the world, the Red Bear, My children, known to you as the Red-Brown Bear.
(vol II page 23)
My Mother counsels you well when
She warns you of compromise with the enemies of your God, the
dangers that you bring into your country. My children, the words
of atheists hold no weight; there is no trust in the ungodly man,
and you cannot consort with them, for you will love one and hate
the other. Is there not a spirit of hate now against all of the
personages of Heaven? (vol II page 24)
MARCH 18, 1977
- Yes, My children, as time goes on in these closing days, you
will watch those of evil intent become brazen in their approach.
They no longer know the meaning of shame or modesty. Like the
brazen serpent they come forward and throw themselves before you.
And why? Because your leaders have enacted rules, regulations,
and laws that hold no water, have no discipline and no purpose.
They are too busy compromising.................It is the easy
way to compromise, My children. It casts the responsibility onto
another, so that you may not be bothered. But I say unto you,
pastors and laymen, you must accept this responsibility to protect
your Faith, to restore My House to its former glory, to chase
out the rodents in mitres that are burrowing like rats into the
foundation of My Church. (vol II page 29)
APRIL 2, 1977
- In your search for love and brotherhood, you have opened My
Church in the name of love and brotherhood to all manners of evil
and demons! I assure you, My children, compromise will get you
nowhere; the promises and words of atheists will get you nowhere.
You will not win souls lowering your standards or making changes
to suit the basic carnal fallen nature of mankind. (vol II page
32)
MAY 13, 1978
- My children, no country now shall be free from the evils of
communism, My heart is torn, for I have come to you in countless
appearances upon earth to warn you as Our children to avoid compromise
with the enemies of God, though they come to you with smooth tongues,
rationalizing their behavior. And because man has fallen out of
grace, he will accept these lies and become enslaved. (vol II
page 145)
MAY 23, 1979
- The commandments of the Eternal Father were written in full;
the construction of My Son's Church was directed in full. All
will be found written by the founding fathers of the Church in
the Bible, your Book of life and love. Pastors in My Son's Church,
whatever are you seeking to reform! You had the truth, you had
the light, but with itching ears you are listening to demons.
(vol II page 213)
OCTOBER 2, 1979
- You cannot compromise the Faith. You cannot accept gratuities
to compromise My Church. Where is your faith? When I return shall
I find even a flicker of faith left in the hearts of My Clergy?
And even My sheep that have been scattered, My children upon earth?
(vol II page 255)
JUNE 13, 1981
- Your country, My child, must turn back to God, because the time
is running out. You cannot compromise with the enemies of your
God, nor can you compromise with the enemies within My Son's House,
His Church. Conform and you will die on the vine. I say unto you,
all clergy, cardinals, bishops and lay people in My Son's House,
His Church: Conform and you will die on the vine. (vol II page
286)
CONCEPTION
JULY 1, 1970
- Pray for those who have not lived. He breathes the Spirit of
Life at the moment of conception! Do not murder the little ones!
His Hand grows heavy! Many souls will be lost. All Heaven is saddened.
Man walks the road to his own destruction. Pray for your brothers.
Bring My Message to the world. So many souls will be lost! Man
has forgotten My Son! It hurts to be turned away. Love My Son
as He loves you! You can't bargain with God and man! One you will
love the other you will hate! (vol I page 10)
MAY 10, 1972
- The torment that will be visited upon those who murder the little
innocents shall be eternal damnation, and they shall spend eternity
with the eyes watching the parade of the murdered innocents! The
Spirit of Life is breathed into the creation of the Eternal Father
at the precise moment of infiltration of conception. Life begins
at the exact moment of the infiltration of conception, therefore
you are destroying a creation of the Eternal Father and, as such,
you will condemn yourself to be eternally damned! You will not
destroy a creation of your God! (vol I page 51)
MARCH 18, 1974
- Murderers shall die! Murderers shall burn forever in the abyss.
Life, and the spirit, enters into the being conceived into the
human body of women at the time of conception. No man shall place
himself above the Father and make the decision on life or death.
(vol I page 172)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975
- Your city and many cities and countries throughout the world
will suffer for the murders of the holy innocents. Life, the spirit
of life, is breathed, the soul placed by the Eternal Father into
the body of the unborn at the precise exact moment of conception.
Do not fall prey to the fallacy; there is no life until the child
emerges from the womb. No! I say to you; life begins at the moment
of conception. The Eternal Father breathes the spirit of life
at the moment of conception. No man shall take this life, for
at that he is guilty and found guilty by the Eternal Father of
murder! (vol I page 408)
CONFESSION
OCTOBER 6, 1973
- You ask, My child, about the state of soul of the priesthood.
This, My child, is not for you to question or judge. A human being
he is, yes. Subject to error, yes. Subject to fail, yes. But still
during the Consecration, and when he hears you in the confessional,
the Holy Spirit comes down upon him, using him as an instrument
to bring absolution to you. (vol I page 140)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974
- My Son is much grieved, My child, in the manner in which many
come to Him in His House. They come with disrespect; they do not
have love for Him in their hearts. My child, please, they lead
themselves onto the road to satan. They must not accept My Son
with sin in their hearts. Many do not go to Our representatives.
They accept My Son with sin on their souls! Shout it, My child,
from the roofs: You must honor the Eucharist! (vol I page 298)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975
- The young children must be taken by their parents to the temples,
the Houses of My Son, throughout your world. They must learn by
habit a good example of cleansing of their soul by CONFESSION.
The good priests of earth, those who have been dedicated and received
this consecration from My Son, must take these tender souls and
nurture them in their Faith. (vol I page 438)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976
- When a man has stepped over the threshold and allowed himself
to fall into mortal sin, he must be purified by trial, but he
must also, My children, be purified by the rule of penance and
confession. What manner of evil is being set now upon mankind
that compels him to lose his soul by rejecting the Sacraments,
by no longer confessing to his confessor, but coming to receive
My Son in sacrifice, while his soul is degraded by sin of mortal
nature! (vol I page 529)
DECEMBER 7, 1976
- My child, make it known to mankind that penance and confession
is a private communication between the confessor, the penitent,
and God. (vol I page 567)
AUGUST 13, 1977
- Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, My children. All who are
in the pure spirit of light will have nothing to fear. If you
fall victim to satan, you must immediately run to receive a new
store of grace from your pastor in confession and the receiving
of My Son's Body. My children and those you love. There is not
much time left. (vol II page 77)
CONSCIENCE
MAY 19, 1971
- Confusion! Confusion. It is satan's method. Fear and confusion.
You must recognize the face of evil, you must not be led as sheep
to the slaughter! We gave you all an inborn conscience. These
evils must be stopped because of the children. The heavy burden
will be upon the parents. They must keep the Faith in their hearts.
It will not be an easy task, your only refuge will be your home.
You will have to bar your door against evil. Yes, you can be deluded
and misled and not see the evil about you! It could be, My child,
like mass hypnotism! Satan has gained much ground throughout your
earth. The numbers of conquests increase every day and not enough
forces to stop them. We place a heavy burden upon you who have
the heart and the faith. You must save your brothers and sisters
from this evil! (vol I page 28)
MARCH 25, 1972
- All who do not recognize My Son as the Savior shall not be given
keys to the Kingdom. My Son, in the Father has given you all an
inborn conscience, and guardians that you would not fall prey
to the agents of satan or his planned elements. Should you throw
away Our graces, you will become blind, in darkness, until you
will no longer recognize the truth! (vol I page 46)
APRIL 1, 1972
- There is a great war ahead, many arms will be needed in this
battle. You will be on divided sides the road in between holds
nothing. You will not be lukewarm, but forced with the love of
My Son to defend Him as such! You must decide your path, hell
or Heaven! There is no recourse, My children. You have all been
given an inborn conscience. You must reject the plan of satan
and not succumb to his lures! The world about you has become the
playground of satan and his agents. Your world is in darkness.
Our Church is in darkness; but We still carry the light. All who
follow Me, My children, will be led out of the darkness. (vol
I page 49)
APRIL 10, 1972
- Your country is now turning fast to pagan practices, My children.
Satan has entered upon your hearts well; you accept him of free
will (conscience). All who will stand to defend My Son in these
trials, many will be martyred. (vol I page 50)
MARCH 25, 1973
- God the Father has given each man an inborn conscience. He will
sin when he chooses to blind himself to the truth. (vol I page
92)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973
- Every soul, My child, that has entered, fallen into hell, has
had his choice. In each life there is that moment of recognition
of soul. You have all been given a God-born conscience. The Creator,
your Father, did not birth you in ignorance. Those who fall into
the abyss have done this of free will. (vol I page 144)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974
- My child, is it necessary for Me to repeat My words? Have I
not reached the world with an essence of the truth? The truth
lies in every man's heart, for every man has been given an inborn
conscience from the Father. However of your own will can you shut
up your contact with your Father, for you give yourself to the
world. (vol I page 161)
AUGUST 21, 1974
- The murder of the young shall not be condoned by the clergy,
nor the laity! Hell shall claim each human who in conscience and
free will has accepted the murder of the young! Remember, My children,
satan sends his agents, demons, in human form. They will do nothing
unless they enter into the bodies of any human, man, woman or
child who has fallen out of grace and given himself to the agents
of darkness and the ways of satan. (vol I page 247)
JUNE 18, 1977
- Every man, woman and child of the age of reason knows right
from wrong, for he has been given an inborn conscience. At the
moment of his conception a life is forming, regardless of what
the agents of hell now pollute the minds of mankind with, creating
murders of the young! I say unto you, life begins at the moment
of conception and all who extinguish this light are murderers,
and without repentance shall be condemned to hell! (vol II page
61)
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG)
- My child and my children, you must do your utmost to bring back
into My House, My Church upon earth, the Faith. I often cried
through My Mother's tears, Her tears and Mine abounded over the
earth, because through the Eternal Father, man was given a conscience
and a free will, to either accept Heaven by sacrifice and penance,
and having to face the rebuke of a darkened world.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG)
- My child and My children, many punishments have gone by unnoticed,
and many more shall be given. I say this with a heavy heart, because
daily the prayers of the multitudes reach Us, asking forgiveness
for those who have sinned. My child and My children, I must tell
you that they have a free will and conscience. ................Russia,
being an atheistic country, My children, Russia, you cannot believe
what they tell you, nor what they print in their tabloids. Russia
has but one plan; to capture the whole world. They will do this
without heart or conscience. Therefore, know that I ask you again,
as your God in the Trinity, I ask you to contact the Holy Father
and beg him to consecrate Russia to the Immaculate Heart of My
Mother. This has not been done, My children. That is why as time
goes on, until that grain goes through the hourglass forever,
that is why you will undergo great suffering.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - Veronica: Oh my goodness! The satanic master, or what he calls himself, has two horns! They look like they're coming out of his head-not a costume, but actually out of his head! And he's laughing! Blessed Mother, he's so evil! Must I look at him?...........Do not be affrighted, My child; I placed a veil between him and you at the time. But they are conducting their services this evening, so the prayers that you will say, My child, when you return home tomorrow, you will say it for this group. There are children among them that have been missing now for months, for years. They are all pawns of the satanic cults!.............You ask, My child, what can be done about them. First, you must go to the supernatural. You must also read your Bible and place before these obnoxious, self-satisfied demons from hell, that have entered into the bodies of these individuals.....They have been under full control, therefore, they have no conscience. They have no holiness. They are everything the opposite to Christianity, and their goal is to take the Catholic children of the world, through nationwide cults. Already, there are five
thousand or more now in the United
States and Canada, and people ask: 'Where have my children disappeared
to?'
CORPORAL WORKS OF MERCY
SEPTEMBER 7, 1979
- You understand now, My child, with your experience, why I cry
bitter tears throughout your world, crying for the true meaning
of love to be expressed by mankind. Love means the Corporal works
of Mercy...............Do you, My children, truly know the meaning
of love and practice it in your daily life? Or have your lives
been given over to luxury and seeking pleasures of the flesh?
Selfishness abounding in the hearts of many, and even in the hearts
of the clergy. The corporal acts of mercy must be practiced by
the clergy in My Son's House. (vol II page 244)
There is now upon earth, as I have
directed you and counseled you before to be aware of, by wearing
your sacramentsls, to be prepared for the onslaughts of the agents
of hell. I do not wish that you go about making hasty judgments
against your brothers and sisters.. The corporal works of mercy
must always be followed. (vol II page 246)
My children, you must all be defenders
of your Faith. By your example and your practice of the corporal
works of mercy among mankind, you can stem the tide of evil now
that has engulfed all of the nations of three-quarters of mankind.
(vol II page 246)
COUNCIL, BISHOPS: PHILADELPHIA
AUGUST 14, 1976
- My children, Our sorrow is deep. We watched with great anticipation
and hope that the gathering of Our bishops would bring forward
much good, but sadly, We found confusion and delusion in this
gathering in your city of Philadelphia. (vol I page 521)
COUNCIL/CONCLAVES
V O L U M E I
FEBRUARY 1, 1974
- Watch, My children, what is to be. They will call another Council.
Oh, but satan now has his plans. Oh, woe! Woe! to evil man! What
is to become upon them! (vol I page 160)
AUGUST 14, 1974
- Satan was present, he listened with careful ears at the Great
Council. He awaited every move, and he placed his agents among
you! Recognize and reconstruct your path! You have been deluded!
You are on the wrong road! Turn about now, or you will sow the
seeds for your own destruction. (vol I page 242,243)
MARCH 18, 1976 - The Great Council, the Council that has brought forth discord, disunity, and the loss of souls, the major fact behind this destruction was because of the lack of prayer.............
Satan sat in within this Council,
and he watched his advantage. He is now playing a game of chess
with the Red Hats and the Purple Hats, moving them with great
glee as he watches the evil accelerate, and all manners of people
are flowing fast through the doors of the Holy City and all ecumenical
bodies. (vol I page 477)
MAY 15, 1976
- I repeat, My children, as I have told you in the past, that
the great Council of Vatican II was manipulated by satan. He sat
there among you and he worked you like a chessboard................What
can you do now to recover? It is simple, My children; turn back
and start over with the foundation given to you. You must bring
respect back to your priesthood. You must bring respect back to
your Holy Father, Pope Paul VI. I have warned you of all manners
of abomination, errors, and delusions that have been set upon
you. Listen, and act upon My warnings to you. (vol I page 486)
JUNE 5, 1976
- Bishops in My Son's House, Church, you have gone astray. You
have scattered Our sheep. You have joined with all manner of heretics
and false teachers. You started with good intentions in your Council,
but you became deluded in your search for peace and brotherhood.
You allowed all manner of error to creep slowly into My Son's
House, Church. You must understand that you are setting in motion
the formation of a World Council of Churches, but it will not
be the Church of My Son. It will be a church of man, a church
without the true foundation. (vol I page 497)
AUGUST 5, 1976
- I repeat, My children, the great Council in Rome of Vatican
II, the promises were great, but satan sat among you and he played
you like the chess board. (vol I page 518)
V O L U M E I I
MAY 18, 1977
- In the Council of Rome, of Vatican II, man set out to use his
own deviations to promote peace. Look about you, My children,
and learn what peace has been brought to mankind. Man cries peace,
peace, and he goes farther away from peace. There shall be no
peace without faith. There shall be no peace without the plan
of God in the hearts of man! (vol II page 43)
JULY 25, 1977
- My children, the Council of Vatican II was started with good
intent, but the doors were opened to all manner of heretics, causing
a slow pollution of the Faith. My children, you must now awaken
the pastors from their slumber! They have given themselves over
now to a new religion of man. (vol II page 68)
OCTOBER 1, 1977
- The enemies of your God are gathered within the Holy City of
Rome. Sad to say, My children, but a fact of truth, that many
of the councils now shall bring forth diabolical ventures. (vol
II page 91)
MAY 13, 1978
- All manner of promises were made at the Council in Rome, Vatican
II. The road to hell is often paved with good intentions. (vol
II page 145)
AUGUST 19, 1978 - Before the forming of the coming council, the conclave, you will all pray daily the beads of prayer, the Rosary, that the Seat of Peter shall not be covered in darkness. ......
My children, you will continue now
with your prayers of atonement. Pray constantly for your cardinals
in Rome. The outcome of the council will be the deciding focal
point for the coming of the Warning and Great Chastisement to
mankind. .............My children, you will continue now with
your prayers of atonement. Pray constantly for your cardinals
in Rome. The outcome of the council will be the deciding focal
point for the coming of the Warning and Great Chastisement to
mankind. (vol II page 184)
The days coming will be days filled
with news for mankind, and I say unto you as your God: It is in
the will of the Eternal Father that the world of man upon earth
must make a decided change for the better, or the world must come
to a closing of the era. (vol II page 184,185)
You will all now keep a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your country and the world.
Pray for your bishops, your cardinals in Rome. The decision they
are planning shall bring on a great catastrophe to My Church and
to the peoples of the world, for many souls shall be lost unless
they change this decision. (vol II page 185)
OCTOBER 6, 1978
- My children, a conclave shall start, and without prayers you
will receive one on the seat of Peter, one with dark spirits,
consorting with the devil. (vol II page 197)
M E S S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG)
- Many because of the mistakes made issuing forth from the good
hearts of John XXIII, Pope Paul VI; many have taken the messages
and the directions given at the Vatican Council and twisted them
to suit themselves, reading in the Bible words of their own, or
finding excuses for their sinning, through the Bible.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG)
- Yes, My child, even with Vatican II, it started out with the
best resolves, but then satan took over the scene. And with his
agents he reached into the highest professions, the highest league
of the Hierarchy, until it saddens Me to say that many priests
now are on the road to perdition and taking many others with them.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG)
- I say this evening, as your God, that on that date, as promised
at Fatima, satan entered My Church upon earth. He brought with
him his agents, and satan himself, the deceiver of all mankind,
sat in on Vatican II and maneuvered all the outsiders to come
in and distort My doctrines and distort the truth. ...............At
Fatima, My Mother tried to warn of this coming event, but who
cared to listen? Who was interested in listening? All Heaven was
crying in that time, for the Eternal Father had made it known
how His message would be received..
COVENS
- See Satanists: Covens
CROSS, BARREN
JUNE 5, 1975
- My child, many have asked about this Cross without the Corpus.
It is a symbol of the suffering that will be allowed to a victim
soul. Each man and woman upon earth will now be tested in the
days ahead. (vol I page 373)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1979
- Repeat, My child. Only by experience can any human being understand
My Son's suffering. Many crosses are placed upon earth, barren
of the corpus, to represent those who will be victims for the
merciful love of the Eternal Father in Heaven and the repatriation
of many souls. (vol II page 245)
CROSS, CARRYING OF/CROSS OF CHRIST
V O L U M E I
JULY 1, 1970
- The strong must carry the weak. Keep His Cross before you always.
Prayer and sacrifice will be your guide to the Light. Place not
your trust in this world, for it is your exile. Eternity is forever.
The children are the innocent victims! Pray for your children.
My tears fall on all mothers. Come to Me for I will comfort you!
Pray! Pray always, My children. There are many souls to be saved.
I know of a mother's broken heart that tears cannot mend. My Son
will comfort you. I bless you all, My children. Pray My Rosary
daily. (vol I page 10)
JULY 15, 1970
- Pray for My priests. They are led into the darkness. Many hearts
are hardened to the truth. There is salvation in prayer. Many
will be sacrificed in the engulfment. Carry your cross, My children.
All hearts must rise to Heaven in prayer. (vol I page 11)
AUGUST 5, 1970
- Your crosses will increase from now on but persevere and you
will reach the Kingdom. (vol I page 12)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1970
- Continue to give to the world; to bring Our Message to the world.
It is not an easy task. But carry your crosses with joy for the
expectancy of Heaven to come. I let fall a shower of roses upon
you. (vol I page 15)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970
- I cannot guarantee happiness for you in this world, but if you
help Me carry His Cross, the Glory of Heaven will be yours, for
the time is not that long. Each and everyone will be saved if
he will just come to Us. (vol I page 17)
This beloved spot, this hallowed
place will be an oasis in a barren land, for We will dispense
here many graces upon you all. We know you care. We know you love
and We hope with you. I say this because My dear Son has always
been long suffering. He carries His Cross for you because He loves
you! Won't your help carry His Cross for Him? It won't be easy,
but Our little armies throughout the world will rescue many souls
before the end. It is not just by chance that I chose this place,
for here I found the seed of hope! (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 26, 1970
- Carry your Cross, My children, be not affected by the mockery
and insults you will receive when you defend My Son. We will always
be with you, so face the world with His Cross in your hand! It
will far exceed all the greatest joys of expectation. Yes, they
will hate you, as they hated My Son when He brought the Word.
They will laugh at you as they laughed at Him. ..................Prepare
for this heavy cross. (vol I page 20)
APRIL 10, 1971
- Unless you reach out to help gather the souls of all your brothers
and sisters, you will not be counted among those gathered during
the destruction! Love is always in giving! My child, care not
for the judgment of mere man, but shoulder your cross, keep the
Words given to you by My Son in your heart, for they will comfort
you in your trials. (vol I page 27)
AUGUST 21, 1971
- This great flame they will see and yet not believe. Then, satan
will claim his own. There will be a heavy cross upon this world...........Many
will be granted their supplications, but many will also have to
bear their crosses of illness in order to purify their souls,
to enter the Kingdom. They will eliminate their stay in purgatory
by cleansing their souls as victim souls upon earth and suffering
for the weak. (vol I page 34)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1971
- Unless you are able to penetrate the darkness with the light
of truth, many will carry the cross with My Son! I tell you now:
Count not on the extension of this Chastisement. As I repeat to
you: The last grain is approaching, ere but for the merciful heart
of My Son in the Father you would receive much worse than is planned
to be metered to you! (vol I page 35,36)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972
- Oh, My children, recognize the path you are traveling on. I
have given you enlightenment, and many miraculous manifestations.
It is only to strengthen you in the days ahead, for many will
fall in the battle. They will be unable to carry the cross, as
it will become too heavy for them. The strength necessary will
be given to you if you come to My Son for you will then bask in
the Light of His Sacred Heart! My Son sheds tears of great sorrow.
He cannot look upon the creation with joy............. There are
two crosses in the world now, My children, the Cross of the Living
God and the one that man has built for himself to worship! Pagans
in disguise! Bowing down to man! (vol I page 43)
MARCH 25, 1972
- I hear all the entreaties you send to Me, My children. Some
will be cured; others must carry their crosses. Do not misunderstand
Me, My words. Those who carry their crosses will be doubly blessed.
We have asked for victim souls in these dark days; carry your
cross with purpose; offer your sufferings with My Son, Who suffered
much for you. (vol I page 46)
APRIL 10, 1972
- All messages given in the past must be dispersed as quickly
as possible! Do not be affected by those who will meet you in
rebuttal! It is the cross you will carry. Suffer, My children,
with patience! (vol I page 50)
DECEMBER 24, 1972
- If you have given your lives into the trust of My Son, you will
be guided along the right path for your salvation. Do not expect
to fully understand the ways of your God. For His judgment is
not akin to man's. Accept the trials and the sufferings of your
daily life upon earth. And when the time comes, you will fully
understand why your cross was made heavy. And I assure you, My
children, at that time you will rise with joy of heart, to know
that you were given the opportunity for your salvation. (vol I
page 72)
DECEMBER 31, 1972
- In the battle ahead, you will find that you will be rejected
by many of your own. Your road, the Cross, you carry, cannot be
lightened at this time. The sins of man have placed a great burden
upon those who have offered themselves as victim souls. Souls
who will do penance, penance to obtain mercy for the wicked. (vol
I page 76)
MARCH 25, 1973
- All must retire from your world that has been given to satan.
You will not have both. You must now pick up the cross and carry
it. Only in this way will you stay on the road. It is a narrow
road, and when you leave, it is difficult to find the way back.
(vol I page 90)
APRIL 14, 1973
- You will be given, My children, no heavier a cross than you
can carry. Think of the great graces you can accumulate with your
suffering. To walk to the Kingdom is a thorny road. (vol I page
95)
JUNE 16, 1973
- Man has now the choice of his destruction or his reprieve. All
who follow the light will carry heavy crosses. (vol I page 109)
JULY 15, 1973
- The road to sanctification is not an easy road. We expect all
to fall and tumble. But you will pick yourselves up and continue
to carry your crosses. (vol I page 115)
OCTOBER 6, 1973
- I know that among you there are many who will accept the cross
and be disciples for My Son. Join Me, My children, as We gather
your brothers and sisters. (vol I page 141)
NOVEMBER 1, 1973
- Know that this night you have joined Me on the cross. Therefore,
since you have acknowledged Me before man, I will acknowledge
you before the Father. My children, you have heeded the call of
My Mother, and you will be counted among those saved. (vol I page
143)
DECEMBER 7, 1973
- There will be placed upon the world a very heavy cross. Your
country shall not escape a long due Chastisement. The Father is
not hard of heart. He is most merciful and has suffered long,.
However, it will be the purification for many. (vol I page 147)
There are many who are carrying,
My child, heavy crosses. Many of these crosses will be taken from
them, but We ask others to carry them with perseverance and purpose.
For it is their sacrifice that will be instruments in the recovery
of many souls. Know the value of suffering. (vol I page 148)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974
- We place a great burden, My child, upon the few who have been
given the graces to understand. Know then, that We do not send
this suffering upon you and others without reason. You cannot
enter the Kingdom, My child, unless you are willing to carry the
cross. I have never, My child, forced you to accept any mission.
You must do this of your own will. This decision will mean a very
heavy cross for you. Yes, My child, I knew before your answer
what it would be, for that is why the Father chose you long ago.
There are many, now, My child, like you throughout the world.
You are not alone in the battle. All must unite against the common
enemy of the Father. (vol I page 161)
APRIL 6, 1974
- You will find that many will be placed upon the cross as victims
for their faith. All who follow My Son will carry a very heavy
cross. The time of the persecution is now accelerating, prepare
yourselves, retire from your world which has been given to satan.
(vol I page 183)
APRIL 13, 1974
- The road to martyrdom, My child is not one that would be accepted
in your human nature. However, all who enter the Kingdom of the
Father must carry the Cross. Know, My child, that now all are
being separated. Many are already marked with the sign of the
beast or the mark of the Cross. In your perception, you will be
given this insight to recognize the enemies of your God. (vol
I page 193)
JUNE 8, 1974
- My child, your heart is heavy. You join Us in the great sorrow.
A great darkness covers the world. It is in darkness of the spirit.
The road you travel will be a road filled with thorns. The cross
will be heavy as you follow the path. (vol I page 109)
JUNE 15, 1974
- You will understand, My child, in time, that those who are given
great graces must carry a very heavy cross. There is much that
cannot be revealed to you at this time, for there are mysteries
of Heaven and a great mystery of earth. At the proper time all
this will be made known to you. (vol I page 214)
JUNE 18, 1974
- The forces of evil are rampant upon your world. Many will take
the easy road, the wide road leading into the abyss. Pick up your
cross, My children and follow My Son. It is the only road that
will lead to eternal happiness. (vol I page 223)
AUGUST 5, 1974
- I bless you all My children, as the Father blesses you in the
Holy Spirit. We dispense among you the graces for your salvation.
None will be lost but of his own free will. Remember this: The
way to Heaven will be the Way of the Cross. (vol I page 240)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974
- If you, My child, find your road filled with thorns, know that
you are truly traveling the way of the cross. You cannot expect
any less a lot than My Son received when He brought the Message
to the world. For if you were bringing a message known to the
world you would be accepted. But since you bring a message of
the spirit, those not of the spirit will reject you, My child.
Pray for them, for the power of prayer is great. (vol I page 300)
DECEMBER 6, 1974
- You must not forget the fifteen minutes a day of reading the
Book of Life and Love, your Bible. Do not be concerned of the
words of mankind. Know that all who follow My Son must carry His
Cross. (vol I page 302)
DECEMBER 28, 1974
- My child! Do not flee in fear! You must stay and fight the evil.
Think, My child, of the great glory of martyrdom. Know that every
man who leaves the earth carrying My Son's Cross, holds the key
to the Kingdom...............You, My child, and others of Our
children upon earth, would not be able to understand the way of
a Father. That is why I counsel you My child and My children to
accept all the Father sends you, be it crosses or roses. With
each rose that is given, My child, there will be thorns. (vol
I page 315)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975
- I must tell you now that all who remain with My Son will carry
the Cross. However, know that the victory is with My Son, for
satan and hell shall fall. The state of My Son's House is temporary.
It is in the plan of the Father that the sheep shall be separated
from the goats. All that is rotten shall fall. A House, a Church
in darkness, wears a band of death about it. (vol I page 329)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975
- I bless you all, My children, as children of the light. I will
be with you to the Second Coming of My Son. All who are burdened
with their cross, come to Me and I will comfort you. Come to My
Son in the Tabernacles of the world. Hurry, My children, the agents
of hell are loosed and have set in motion a plan now to close
these Tabernacles to you. Hasten now, gather your graces, My child,
while there is still time! Spend much time with My Son in the
Eucharist. It is truly the Bread of Life. It will be a most dark
day, My child, when these Tabernacles will be closed to you. (vol
I page 335,336)
MARCH 18, 1975
- Veronica: Now Our Lady is coming forward. And She's holding
now a Cross. It's a wooden Cross, and I don't see a Corpus on
it. And She's holding the wooden Cross in front of Her like this.
......Our Lady: My child, this is the symbol accepted by little
Theresa. All who follow My Son must place themselves upon this
Cross. It is the way of Christ. (vol I page 341)
APRIL 5, 1975
- Padre Pio: My spiritual children, you must unite in a common
cause. Your world shall be chastised soon. Many shall die in the
great flame of the Ball of Redemption. You have been given an
extension of time to gather the souls, My children. Do not expect
to follow my road and the road of the Savior without suffering.
It is truly the Way of the Cross. Use more time in daily prayer.
Not enough pray, My children. (vol I page 356)
You see, My child, all suffering
shall be used for the salvation of souls. None enter into the
Kingdom except by the Way of the Cross. The road to Heaven is
filled with thorns but at the end of the road you will receive
a very large bouquet of roses. (vol I page 357)
MAY 28, 1975
- Know, My children, that I am always with you, My Mother is with
you. We will guide you in the future. Your future is now. The
days grow short. Accept your cross, My children, and go forward
searching as candles in the darkness. ..........I bless, you,
My children, and give you peace of heart, My children, in your
present struggles. Know that you shall travel the way of the cross.
..........Have pity upon your neighbors, My children. Pray for
them. Pray for those who castigate you. Pray for those who slander
you for in their hearts many are misled and truly do not know
what they have done. Do not judge, lest you be judged, My children.
Accept your cross and carry it without complaint. (vol I page
370)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- You will be scoffed at, you will be slandered, you will be mocked.
There is only one way, My child, to the Kingdom Eternal, that
is by carrying the cross. (vol I page 394)
AUGUST 14, 1975
- You have been given a time to change. The time is running out!
Those who are of well spirit will have nothing to fear, My child.
For they will go through this crucible of suffering with more
hope and courage, knowing that the eventual victory is over the
veil with the Eternal Father. There will be many martyrs in the
conflagration that lies ahead! It will truly be the cross!..................You
must, as a child of God, pick up your cross and carry it, even
if it is heavy! Suffering shall be a way of life soon for many.
It is all in the plan of the Eternal Father to separate the sheep
from the goats. You are all being tested, My children. (vol I
page 400)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975
- As it was in the time of My Son upon earth, so it shall be in
your time. All children of God shall enter upon a crucifixion,
but carry your cross, My child, My children, carry your crosses
with great fortitude and perseverance for the victory is with
My Son. (vol I page 412)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975
- All who do not wear the sign of the cross, My child, shall be
made known to you, and those who have carried their crosses through
this battle. (vol I page 446)
JANUARY 31, 1976
- Be persevering, My children. Be confident in the Eternal Father.
You will not be given any more trial than you can proceed through.
Your burdens may be heavy, but know that you are going truly the
way of the cross. (vol I page 470)
APRIL 10, 1976
- You will hear, My child, sadly, clamoring and voices being raised
against your Vicar. You will go forward carrying the banner of
Faithful and True. You cannot expect a life of all roses, My child
and My children, for your road will be filled with thorns. Pick
up your cross and carry it without complaint, My child and My
children. (vol I page 480)
MAY 26, 1976
- You must all keep a constant vigilance of prayer throughout
your country and the world. The few who have been gifted with
grace must carry a heavy cross. Accept your cross, My children,
with perseverance and confidence. The final victory is with Heaven.
This shall comfort you in the days ahead, the knowledge that you
shall be victorious with My Mother. (vol I page 492)
AUGUST 21, 1976
- My children, all who follow the road to the light must carry
the cross. The greatest suffering that can be entered in to your
heart is to know of the fall of a friend. Pray, My child, a constant
vigilance of prayer, for no man can be free from the attacks of
satan while he is upon your earth. Pray much that you and others
shall not fall into his web of evil. I repeat; no man is free
from these attacks until he comes over the veil. (vol I page 525)
In the past, many warnings have been
given through voice-boxes throughout your world, My children.
Many of your saints were given the sight to see. There is a great
price for the ability, My child, to see, for beneath every rose
is a very heavy cross, My child. (vol I page 526)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976
- Your lives upon earth shall be a constant struggle to avoid
the snares of satan. This is the way of the cross, My children,
and every man, woman and child shall travel this road in order
to be purified and to enter the Eternal Kingdom of your God. I
say unto you, My children, never since the time of Sodom, and
never since the earth went through the trial of being cleansed
by great waters, shall man see what will soon come upon him for
his sin, for his succumbing to the pleasures of the flesh, and
for discarding his God for all of the creations and spirit of
darkness, allowing the prince of darkness, satan, your adversary,
to gain control of your country and your world. (vol I page 531,532)
Your lives upon earth shall be a
constant struggle to avoid the snares of satan. This is the way
of the cross, My child, and every man, woman, and child shall
travel this road in order to be purified and to enter the Eternal
Kingdom of your God. I say unto you, My children, never since
the time of Sodom, and never since the earth went through the
trial of being cleansed by great waters, shall man see what will
soon come upon him for his sin, for his succumbing to the pleasures
of the flesh, and for discarding his God for all of the creatures
and spirit of darkness, allowing the prince of darkness, satan,
your adversary, to gain control of your country and the world.
(vol I page 532)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976
- The greatest of trials, My child, will be given to those who
have been chosen for special missions upon your earth. It is truly
the way of the cross. My Mother and I are united with the symbol
of My cross before mankind. (vol I page 533)
Now, My child, you will fully understand
the way of the cross. After penance, My child, there is always
a great joy. (vol I page 534)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1976
- You must expect to have a road filled with thorns, My children.
Pick up your cross and carry it; follow My Son. The road to Heaven
is a narrow road. Many turn and leave it and find the way back
most difficult. (vol I page 537)
OCTOBER 2, 1976
- My children, you go through your earthly life looking for the
roses, but you must understand the cross is always beneath the
roses. (vol I page 542)
Accept your cross, My children. Carry
it well, for it is only a short and narrow road to the Eternal
Kingdom, and when you choose to drop your cross and go onto the
wide road it is very difficult, My children, to return. Better
that you persevere in truth and in faith. (vol I page 546)
OCTOBER 6, 1976
- Yes, My child, many shall be given crosses and many shall not
be able to stand up under them. You will be tried like mettles
in the fire. It is truly the way of the cross, My child. (vol
I page 549)
OCTOBER 6, 1976
- Do not allow your minds to be clouded by satan. Keep a constant
vigilance of prayer going throughout your country and all of the
countries of the world. Pray for those who have received the greatest
of crosses, those who no longer can receive Me, My children, in
the Eucharist. (vol I page 551)
Do not be misguided by those who,
in the spirit of darkness, take the knowledge of the supernatural
from you. Yes, in order, My children, to stay in the light, you
will be rejected by many; you will be scorned; you will be called
insane; because, I repeat; there is nothing in common between
the light and the darkness. As they rejected Me upon your earth,
you, too, must go the way of the cross. But carry your cross,
My children, with purpose and fortitude. And I assure you, as
your God, that the road you follow in the light will be well worth
your perseverance. The joys of Heaven are for all, but all do
not attain this height, My children, for they are not willing
to sacrifice and do penance and to follow the way of the cross.
(vol I page 555)
DECEMBER 28, 1976
- You see, My child, all suffering shall be used for the salvation
of souls. None enter into the Kingdom except by the Way of the
Cross. The road to Heaven is filled with thorns but at the end
of the road you will receive a very large bouquet of roses. (vol
I page 578)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977
- My children, I promise you, as your Mother, to be with you until
your world and mankind has been righted by My Son. Step by step,
through the darkness into the light, shall I lead you, My children.
But it will be a road filled with thorns. The cross will grow
heavy. You will stagger, you will fall, but I assure you, My children,
you will rise even stronger. (vol II page 20)
FEBRUARY 10, 1977
- The road ahead will be filled with thorns, but is the way of
the cross, My children. As I lived upon your earth, all who follow
My road must carry the cross. (vol II page 25)
APRIL 9, 1977
- All of the sufferings you must endure are but short and small
crosses, My children, in comparison to everlasting life over the
veil. Accept these crosses, carry them for My Son, and He will
acknowledge you before the Eternal Father. He will await you with
a crown for your perseverance and faith. (vol II page 35)
MAY 28, 1977
- Mankind has given itself into all manner of sin and abomination.
Mankind shall be cleansed by trial. All that is rotten shall fall.
Many shall carry a heavy cross in the days ahead, but carry it
with perseverance and dignity and purpose, for no man shall be
above his master. As He went the way of His cross, so will you
as children of God go His way. (vol II page 48)
MAY 30, 1977
- O My children, there will be many martyrs coming out of the
tribulation period. You will all follow My way; you will pick
up your cross and carry it without questioning or complaint. (vol
II page 52)
JULY 15, 1977
- You will keep all of the sacramentals with you, upon your person,
for in this war of the spirits, My children, I assure you, you
will need every one of them. Surely, it will be a battle to the
finish. You will be scoffed at; you will be called crazy and all
manner of other epithets the unbeliever can devise. But, My children,
you will follow the same path as My Son. Pick up your cross and
follow Him The road will be strewn with thorns. I assure you,
My children, you will pass through them, but then you will find
a field full of roses and lilies. (vol II page 64)
JULY 25, 1977
- My children, you will all be unified under the banner of Faithful
and True to the Eternal Father. To be faithful and true, My children,
you must be of the cross, and follow the cross, and not one that
has been made by man. You must remain true and faithful to the
teachings as given to you by the founders of My Son's Church.
(vol II page 68)
AUGUST 5, 1977
- Do not become discouraged, My children, as you continue upon
this mission for Heaven. You will be a minority upon earth subject
to trial and derision from those who will be lost. As My Son was
tormented, rejected and abused physically, you must expect to
carry your cross as He did. (vol II page 74)
OCTOBER 1, 1977
- My children, do not be afeared of the judgment of the world
upon you; for as they judged My Son, and He walked among thorns,
so will you be judged. The cross will be heavy. You will be rejected
by the world, for you in the light have nothing in common with
the darkness. You will be rejected by the world; but, gloriously,
you will be accepted by Heaven. ..............My children, there
is a separation now being made among your workers. We cannot contain
within the ranks those who have become lukewarm. Many will fall
by the wayside, for the cross will become too heavy. You will
pray for those who have not gathered their graces to fight in
this final battle. My children, they will not be lost, but they
endanger their souls by entering into the world. (vol II page
91)
OCTOBER 6, 1977
- My child and My children, understand well that as I was persecuted
upon earth, do not expect any less a lot. For the cross is always
heavy, and unless you carry this cross you cannot reach Heaven.
For the way of the cross is the true road to the Kingdom. (vol
II page 95)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977
- My children, I cannot promise you an easy road. The road to
Heaven is not easy; it is filled with thorns. But I assure you,
My children, if you will pick up your cross and carry it, at the
end of this road, you will find roses and beauty far beyond anything
the human mind could ever comprehend. The battle, My children,
will be won when you say in your trial, My Jesus, my Confidence!
My Jesus, my Confidence! (vol II page 97)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977
- My children, all who are of well spirits will understand the
urgency of bringing this Message to you and the world. All who
have been given the mission to be carriers of the light to mankind
will not be free from attacks of satan. My children, there is
a heavy cross for all who follow the way of My Son. Satan will
send many agents to disturb. (vol II page 105)
You shall, as you go, My children,
throughout your world bringing the Message from Heaven, you will
be called all names, but, My children, these names may hurt your
heart, but do not be concerned of these thorns, for I too walked
your earth and was subject to the same trial. Can you not follow
Me upon My path and carry your cross without complaint? (vol II
page 106)
DECEMBER 7, 1977
- The road to the Kingdom of your God is a narrow road filled
with many thorns. Can you not, for your redemption, travel this
road for Me? Can you not carry your cross as I did? (vol II page
110)
MARCH 18, 1978
- It will not be easy, My children. The road to Heaven is never
easy. It was not easy for My Son, and you must now, to gain Heaven,
pick up your cross and follow Him on the same road. It is a road
filled with thorns but at the end of that road, My children, there
will be a glorious reward for all. No human eye can ever see until
over the veil the beauty and the glories that await man. (vol
II page 130)
MAY 3, 1978
- The children of light shall go forward with great perseverance,
knowing that they will carry a heavy cross. For no man shall enter
the Kingdom of Heaven unless he picks up his cross and follows
My Son. The road shall not be an easy one, My children. It will
be filled with thorns amid the roses. However, as you progress
in sanctity, you will find, My children, that you relish this
opportunity through suffering to gain graces that may be applied
to the salvation of another soul. When many graces are given to
a human being much is expected of him. (vol II page 141)
MAY 23, 1978
- The road to Heaven shall be covered with thorns among the roses.
Pick up your cross and follow My Son along His way, not the way
now that man is developing for the destruction of the soul. (vol
II page 145)
MAY 30, 1978
- Satan will use human beings who have become walking shells and
dead spirits to trample the meaningful cross of My Son beneath
their feet. As you seek to harm the Mother, you hurt the Son,
and in this manner shall you be repaid measure for measure for
your evil. (vol II page 155)
JULY 15, 1978
- Pray, My children, a constant vigilance of prayer for your Hierarchy,
your priest. Set a good example among them. Do not be afraid of
the scoffers, those who bring derision upon you (derision, My
children). Accept your cross. Pick it up, My children, and carry
it and follow My Son. The reward will be far greater than any
reward that man could ever visualize in his human mind. (vol II
page 172)
JULY 25, 1979
- My Mother has been coming to you as a Mediatrix between God
and man. She sends you and strews among you many roses. Many have
thorns, the thorns are always with the roses. And you will always
find, My child and My children, the cross beneath the roses. The
road to Heaven is the way of the cross. Pick up your cross and
follow Me. The way is narrow, and very few remain on it. Many
are called, but few can be chosen. (vol II page 235)
AUGUST 14, 1979
- The cross, the symbol of life for all, is being trampled on,
and even by many of His clergy, it is being trampled on. But only
for a short time longer. The Eternal Father will not allow My
Son to be recrucified by His own. (vol II page 241)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1979
- We call upon mankind for victim souls; those who are willing
by human will and spiritual light to make restitution upon the
cross! I say unto you, as your God, to pick up your cross and
carry it. The road is narrow and filled with thorns. But there
is only one road to Heaven, and once you go off of it, the way
back becomes more difficult, and often to many, impossible. And
why? Because too few pray for them. (vol II page 245,246)
My child and My children, the cross
of your Christ is being trampled upon. And who will take this
cross and carry it in reparation for the sins of mankind? I beg
unto you as your Mother: Pick up your cross and carry it for My
Son. Can you not suffer for My Son? Can you not make reparation
for the sins of man, to expect God the Father in Heaven may extend
unto you a small measure of time to save your brothers.. (vol
II page 246)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979
- My child and My children, for all who seek to enter the Kingdom
of Heaven, much will be expected of them. The road to Heaven will
have many thorns, the cross will grow heavy, but you will pick
up your cross and follow Me on that road. (vol II page 248)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979
- My Son has accepted His cross. Are there so few who will not
accept a cross to save your world now? To save your Vicar now?
Woe to the inhabitants of the earth! Could I take you now and
open to you into sight what is coming upon mankind, you would
soon be groveling upon the dust, praying on your knees, and walking
on your knees, to avoid the terrible destruction that shall be
wrought by the Ball of Redemption! Many will die in the great
flame of the Ball of Redemption. (vol II page 251)
OCTOBER 2, 1979
- Yes, My child, I have you look upon the crisis ahead. When the
cross is extinguished, there will be great confusion. Murders
will abound; man will proceed deeper into the darkness of spirit.
Without due atonement, without penance and sacrifice of many.
I cannot any longer hold back the punishing hand of My Son. The
Eternal Father, through My Son and the Spirit of Light, give fair
warning to mankind, as in final warning to your generation: That
you must now turn back and restore your earth so that it may be
pleasing in the eyes of the Eternal Father in Heaven, or He shall
be forced to destroy you. (vol II page 253)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979
- My children of light, do not be distressed, for I shall be with
you, and your confidence shall be in the words given to you through
My Mother, in all the messages from Heaven that will guide you
when the road becomes filled with thorns and the cross grows heavy.
(vol II page 265)
DECEMBER 24, 1979
- My children, pick up the cross given to you. No man has ever
received a burden greater than he can carry. The Eternal Father
knows full well the limits, the limitations of your human nature.
(vol II page 268)
JUNE 18, 1980
- Pray, My children, for strength. It will take great courage
to remain in the fold in the days ahead; but your courage shall
be the cross and the knowledge of the truth. (vol II page 273)
OCTOBER 2, 1980
- There is only one way to restore your world to peace, and that
is by following the way of My cross. You cannot change My words
to bring them in line with mankind's own egotistical ways. You
will find that humanism and modernism shall bring much suffering
upon mankind. (vol II page 274)
JUNE 18, 1981
- My child and My children, understand well that as I was persecuted
upon earth, do not expect any less a lot. For the cross is always
heavy, and unless you carry this cross you cannot reach Heaven.
For the way of the cross is the true road to the Kingdom. (vol
II page 292)
APRIL 14, 1984
- My child and My children, My dear, dear children of the world,
My tears fall upon you. I send My heart and My love to all who
have taken up My Son's cross as a way of life to follow Him. (vol
II page 400)
JUNE 18, 1984
- Know, My children, that nothing has been wasted, no act of charity
has been wasted, and none shall say that they didn't try; because
that is also the secret of success into the Kingdom of God, is
that you will try to follow in My Son's steps. (vol II page 404)
M E S S A G E S
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG)
- You ask, My child and My children, why must also the good suffer?
As it was in the beginning of time, so it will be now, that no
one shall be above the crucifixion or beyond it. In order to reach
the eternal life of Heaven, you must take up your cross and follow
My path.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG)
- You ask Me, My child, why We don't just put the heavy hand down
on mankind, and that would be the end of the sinning. No, My child,
the Eternal Father knew that once satan came into the world and
was released from hell with all his demons, he expected many to
fall to his cajolery's. However, though they fall, they must pick
themselves up and walk a rough road, the road of the cross, back
to Heaven. It will be a road of sacrifice and deprivation; however,
in this way, My children, can you be purified for an entrance
into Heaven.
CROSS, SIGN OF
V O L U M E I
DECEMBER 7, 1970
- Remember My plan for the Rosary. Wear your Rosary. I bless you
with final victory! Watch for the Sign of the Cross! (vol I page
18)
APRIL 1, 1972
- As he sows, each individual shall receive. Prepare yourself
well for the days ahead, for a mark has been given to you. My
words have come to you often. I have prepared you well if you
have listened and opened your hearts to Me. (vol I page 49)
AUGUST 5, 1974
- In the world today, man has been marked. He carries the mark
of the beast or the Sign of the Cross. Those in the light will
recognize among their brethren these signs. (vol I page 238)
DECEMBER 31, 1974
- All who have consecrated their heart with Us, have now received
the mark of a Cross upon them. It is a lifetime dedication and
consecration.................You will find, My children, that
since you have received this mark upon you from the Father, you
will be most unhappy if you reject the light. You have been chosen
among the many. It is not by accident that you have been sent
here by the Father. You are all truly children of God. (vol I
page 322)
V O L U M E I I
JUNE 16, 1977
- Already, My children, those who are to be saved have been marked
with the sign of the cross. The numbers now are being counted.
The sheep are being separated from the goats. This is a battle
of the spirits, and man in his free will shall be given the chance
to accept the light or reject it. (vol II page 57,58)
JUNE 18, 1977
- My children, you have all been marked now with the sign of the
cross. Go forward with graces from Heaven. You are now all apostles
of the latter days. And many latter day saints shall come from
among you. (vol II page 61)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977
- My children, I came to counsel you for many earth-years and
you did not listen! Already those who are to be saved have been
marked with the sign of God, the Cross. Those who have given themselves
to satan now, loving their evilness and wrongdoing, shall be claimed
by satan. He has many ogres now in many disguises roaming throughout
your country, city by city, state by state. And this will advance,
without prayer and penance, into every country of your world.
He is the spirit of darkness. He will go wherever there is darkness.
(vol II page 83)
JULY 25, 1978
- O My children, I could give you countless sins, errors in teaching,
naming them, listing them hour by hour, so great have they multiplied
since My first visit among you. Needless to say, all are being
marked with the sign of the cross or the sign of the beast. As
time goes on, My children of light, you will be able to recognize
with your human eyes, through insight from the Eternal Father
in the Spirit, those who are marked with the sign of the cross
or the beast. (vol II page 174)
AUGUST 14, 1978
- The final count shall be in the few of those who are to be saved.
My children, at this very moment of time upon earth, each and
every person of conscionable age has been marked with the sign
of the cross and redemption, or they have accepted on free will
the mark of the beast, eternal damnation! (vol II page 180)
CRUCIFIX
- See Sacramentals: Crucifix
CULTS
- See Satanists: Cults
CUP
- See Chalice
CURATIVE WATERS
- See Bayside: Fountain
CURES - CONVERSIONS
JUNE 18, 1970
- Right from the beginning, Our Blessed Mother instructed Her
messages to be disseminated throughout the world. Miraculous photos
have been taken during the Vigils by various instamatic Polaroid
cameras which produce 'tamperproof' photos. Polaroid has no explanations.
Rosaries have turned from their natural metallic color to gold
during the Vigils, the substance of gold having been verified
by jewelers. There have followed cures and conversions and people
returning to the faith. Veronica has a file with many testimonials.
(vol I page 9)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1970
- I come not only to cure bodies but to save souls. Many will
suffer My Mother's sorrow. Redemption, grace, peace, I carry in
abundance, only for the asking. ............Veronica, you should
wait on this, but since you cannot keep a secret....There will
be many cures. You have seen much, My child, for there is a time
for joy and a time for sorrow, and as you can see, the joys are
in abundance. (vol I page 14)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971
- A work of art, a work of love that has brought tears of joy
to Our Hearts. For this, I bless you all, My children. We now
have placed a full set of armor upon Us. Through this treasure
(the medal of Our Lady of Roses) will flow many Graces from Heaven.
Have them also blessed by a true loving priest and wear them for
the days ahead! For, as the crippled will be cured, the blind
can see, so shall all be saved, who believe and wear this medal.
(vol I page 24)
AUGUST 21, 1971
- Veronica asked Our Lady if all present and sent to the Shrine
could be granted their petition, or cure, if in the will of the
Father, Our Lady said: Many will be granted their supplications,
but many will also have to bear their crosses of illness in order
to purify their souls to enter the Kingdom. They will eliminate
their stay in Purgatory by cleansing their souls as victim souls
upon earth and suffering for the weak! (vol I page 34)
DECEMBER 31, 1971
- Come to Me, I love you all, My children. My arms are opened
wide. I am the Mediatrix of all graces! Many who suffer physical
illnesses will be cured, and many will be asked to accept this
suffering as victim souls, for the relief of souls incarcerated
in purgatory. Your suffering can be the instrument for the salvation
of a fallen soul. (vol I page 42)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972 - My child, it is Our wish that none should perish in the days ahead. Convert the unbeliever! Michael, the Guardian of Our House, makes it known to you that you must convert the unbeliever. The good stalks are being fed the pure waters, or they would have wilted, My child, long ago. Satan has destroyed many minds. Satan has captured many souls from
Us. We ask now that those with strength
in the Light reach out and save your brothers! (vol I page 43)
MARCH 25, 1972
- I hear all the entreaties you send to Me, My children. Some
will be cured; others must carry their crosses. Do not misunderstand
Me, My words. Those who carry their crosses will be doubly blessed.
We have asked for victim souls in these dark days; carry your
cross with purpose; offer your sufferings with My Son, Who suffered
much for you. (vol I page 46)
JUNE 8, 1972
- All who come to Me, on My hallowed grounds, I will comfort them
in their suffering. Many graces of cure and conversion will be
given from Our hearts. There is nothing the Father would not do
to rescue you, My children. Do not turn away from Us! Do not close
your ears to Our pleas! Close your eyes to the world! Close your
ears to the world! (vol I page 54)
FEBRUARY 10, 1973
- I send upon you graces in abundance, graces for the asking,
the power of cure and conversion through prayer, instruments for
the conversion of sinners. All sacramentals blessed on the sacred
grounds of My Son, I say My Son, for I give no credit, My children
to Myself as the Queen of Heaven, but do honor to the Father of
Heaven and earth, for the graces He chooses to send you for the
conversion of your souls. (vol I page 83)
MARCH 18, 1973
- We are permitting at this time manifestations and evidence of
miracles more abundant than ever in the past history of your world.
This is a means We shall use to fight the armies of satan. I promise,
as the Mother of God and Queen of Heaven, to bestow upon all who
come to My Sacred grounds, powers within their sacramentals for
cures and conversions. (vol I page 86)
DECEMBER 24, 1974
- There will be in your country a conversion in your government
leaders. (vol I page 308)
THE SECRET LETTER OF FATIMA:
There will be a time which neither king nor emperor, cardinal
nor bishop is expecting, but it will come, nevertheless, in accordance
with My Father's plan, to punish and avenge. Later, however, when
those who survive all things are still alive, God and His glory
will once more be invoked and will once more be served as He was
not so long ago when the world had not yet been corrupted. I call
on all true imitators of My Son Jesus Christ, all true Christians
and latter day Apostles. The time of times is coming and the end
of all ends, if mankind is not converted and if the conversion
does not come from above, from the directors of the world and
of the Church. But woe, woe if this conversion does not come about
and if all remains as it is, nay, if all becomes even worse. (vol
I page 325,326)
NOVEMBER 1, 1975
- Michael: You ask, my child, why do the wicked prosper? The
Eternal Father has the answer, my child. Each soul is important
to Him. The wicked must be converted; every chance must be given
to them to recover their souls. There will come a time upon your
earth. (vol I page 434)
DECEMBER 24, 1975
- I bless you all My children. I give you in faith all graces
for your conversion and cure, first the cure of the spirit, and
then, my children, the cure of your body, but first the cure of
the spirit. (vol I page 458)
V O L U M E I I
JUNE 18, 1977
- I bless you all, My children, for My Son, in the Eternal Father,
and the Spirit of life. We send among you graces; graces for cures
and conversions, cures of the body and cures of the spirit.
But remember, My children, it is the spiritual cures that are
needed most now. Do not place too much value in physical cures.
The spirit now must be cured, My children, for many soon shall
enter over the veil and they must come with pure spirit. (vol
II page 61)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978
- You are blinded, My Hierarchy. You seek to bring all into My
Church, but this must be by conversion. You are allowing all manner
of heretics and antichrist forces to enter among you. You are
being deceived. Awaken from your slumber. (vol II page 196)
MAY 23, 1979
- My child and My children, I must caution you now to repent of
your sin. The United States of America has fallen from grace.
Your country, My child, and many countries of the world are paganized,
giving themselves, their peoples, over to all manner of sin and
evil that must be cleansed. It will be cleansed through penance
or suffering; suffering that will bring not only death to the
body, but death to many souls before they can recover with conversion.
(vol II page 215)
MAY 26, 1979
- I have asked the pastors of My House not compromise the Faith
of My sheep, for you shall not bring converts into My House in
that manner. You will scatter the sheep. You are fast engaging
in an untimely death for My Church.............I am the foundation,
and when I speak of death, I do not mean the extinction of My
Church. But I say unto you now all Bishops and Cardinals, all
that is rotten will fall. You consort with the enemies of your
God for money and power, and they are waiting to pick your bones
clean. You will not bring about a conversion of those who are
presently apostate by compromising your Faith or changing the
construction of the exterior lines of My Church, and by that I
mean the physical appearance and the manner in which you conduct
the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. (vol II page 219)
JUNE 18, 1984
- You ask, My child, countless times, in the power of God, why
do you not just take them from the earth and cure them of this
illness, the illness of ignorance and the illness of avarice.
My child, there is one thing you must understand; man has a free
will and shall not be forced through the gates of Heaven. He must
come of his own free will. (vol II page 405)
JUNE 18, 1984
- With the extension of the Rosary, many shall now receive the
power through the Holy Spirit, the Holy Ghost, to bring health
of body and health of spirit to each soul. You will find that
your Rosary beads shall turn color again. The stems will become
pure gold. So do not cast aside your Rosary, thinking falsely,
as satan would whisper into your ear that they're not good anymore
and must be thrown away. That presence of the Mother of God. Jesus,
and the Eternal Father in the Holy Ghost, know that these Rosaries
are very powerful. So you will keep them with you always, for
they will have the power for cures and for conversion, cure of
the ailing body and conversion of the sickened soul. (vol II page
407)
JUNE 30, 1984
- My child, you must make it known to all that all of the Rosaries
blessed this evening, and all of the sacramentals, shall be used
in the future for cures and conversions, cures of the body and
the spirit; conversions of the soul, conversions of unbelievers.
(vol II page 411)
M E S S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG)
- This will tell you, My child and My children, that the major
Chastisement shall be a Third World War, which is in the planning
now. Russia has not been converted. And why? Because the Message
I gave many years ago to the little children, and to those who
had the heart to seek for the truth, I told them that unless they
prayed the Rosary and wore their Brown Scapulars, death shall
be a place among the living; death, such as no man could perceive
in his human mind, to see the destruction of missiles and other
contemptible, technological implements, made strictly from the
knowledge of satan.................Now, My child, because of the
long term of rest and illness, you will take three more photographs.
They will stress what I have just given you in words, that sometimes,
My child, one photograph can convert many, because seeing to some
is believing. Blessed are they who do not have to see to believe.
But if they must believe by some physical sign, We send all of
this to you, My children; conversions, cures, photographs. Surely
you cannot turn away from the pleas of My Mother.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG)
- You will see, My child, and know soon, why the light of Heaven
has fallen upon two individuals who, as of this moment upon earth,
are now cured. Get up and walk, My son.......................Veronica:
Now Our Lady is going backwards. She came down quite far to get
to the individuals who are somewhere over here on the right.....I
would say that they are beyond the point of half of the crowd,
out to the street and beyond that point. The man, Our Lady said
the man is sitting in a wheel chair. The man is sitting in a wheel
chair, Our Lady said. And the other, a lady, is now rubbing her
arms. ...........Our Lady: My child, it lifted My heavy heart
to be able to bring from the Father these gifts of conversion
and cure for the crowd. .......There will be two others on Our
left side, they have not been forgotten. One will be conversion,
the other will be cures.....................My child, there will
be very many victims upon earth; those who are willing to sacrifice
their own pleasures, their own human pursuits, to give them over
to the salvation of souls, their brothers and sisters, who are
marked with the mark of satan and are seeking to take it away.
There is only one way; conversion, and then cure of the sick soul.
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG)
- Day by day, man is killing now. Many countries shall be embroiled
in wars, until we have the greatest war ever seen, nor shall ever
be seen again, the Third World War, which shall engulf the nations.
And many nations shall disappear from the force of the armaments
being gathered now throughout Russia. ................Yes, My
child, no matter how the world reacts to the truth, you will shout
it from the rooftops that Russia has not accepted any overtures
from Rome. Unless Russia can be dedicated to the Immaculate Heart
of Jesus and Mary, unless they will recognize the truth, they
will continue to go throughout the world sowing seeds of discord,
discontentment, and war. You know, My children, that war is a
punishment for man's sins, but also, war is an indication of the
loss of the knowledge of God. ...........The enemies of God are
all about you. Russia has planned these days, My child and My
children. And how I have begged for years of earth's time that
Russia be consecrated to My Immaculate Heart. When she is consecrated
she will be converted, My children, and then you shall see the
world of joy again. Tears shall be banished, and mothers shall
not sorrow until they die of grief for the loss of their children
and their sons. ...............My children, I shall not allow
the scientific world to find a cure for AIDS, because of the horrible
nature of what brings on this disease called AIDS. It is being
flaunted now as though the good were to be stomped upon, and the
bad shall receive the glory.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG)
- Look, My children, beyond where My Mother is standing; look
carefully, and you will see the globe of the world, as it starts
to turn.................Veronica: And now it stops on a massive
nation. I see men in uniform, doing what appears to be a goose
step, that is the only way I can explain it. And now I see them
marching six abreast, row after row, across nations and countries.
..................This, My child, is reason for a dirge. For this
nation of Russia shall bring much sorrow to the world. In many
years past, I begged of you to convert Russia, but, instead, there
is a fear of Russia that should not be. There is only one individual
to fear in your world, and that could be, My child and My children,
the fear of an angry God.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG)
- O My children, how I wanted to caress you and tell you good
news, for I am not the bearer of bad news always. I am your Mother
and must tell you the truth. I repeat again, My child Veronica;
you repeat now in your weakened state, again; the Pope, John Paul
II, and all the bishops of the world must allot one day on which
they will pray for the conversion of Russia. Not one day for the
world, but one day for Russia; or else, I tell you now, Russia
will go about and annihilate, destroy many countries. Nations
shall disappear from the face of the earth in the twinkling of
an eye. That is how desperate the situation is now throughout
your world, My children.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG)
- All right, My child, now; you sit back and I will talk to you
when you do what you said you promised Us, that you would take
the Rosaries and the rose petals to the ill and infirm. They come,
My child, with great heart, knowing in their hearts that some
will be cured miraculously this evening. And shall We find the
individual in the wheelchair, that person is going to walk out
his or her wheelchair. So be sure that someone follows you about.
We are gong to stand, My child and My children, directly over
the statue.......................Our Lady: My child, now, you
will gather the rose petals, and the Rosaries that are at hand,
and take them now while they are fresh, to the ill and infirm.
...............Now you will continue, My child, look forward and
find the other wheelchair, My child. It seems to be hidden. It
is very necessary that you find that invalid, because we must
have their name and address..........Veronica: That individual
is in a wheelchair. He has no legs. Oh, no, they're covered by
a shawl. I assumed Jesus said that he had no legs; the legs are
there, but he is paralyzed. ..................Jesus: Now find
that individual and place the rose petals about his head and his
legs. Can you do that, My child? Veronica: Oh, yes, Jesus,
I will. ..................Jesus: We're standing here, My children.
We're not leaving you; but We do want you to find the person for
Us this evening. It will make it much easier when they write out
their cure.
ONE MASSIVE CURE: CHRISTOPHER ROZYCKI
Christopher Rozycki, age 20, of Kensington, Conn. had
progressively become paralyzed over the past two years from a
condition diagnosed as either multiple sclerosis or toxic metal
syndrome. Since Easter he had been largely confined to life in
a wheelchair. ..................About a month ago, Christopher
was introduced to the Shrine, and since then the course of his
destiny has been irreversibly altered for the better. His condition
improved dramatically after using the Bayside rose petal, which
he kept secured to his bedpost. ..................On June 18th,
he embarked on his fateful pilgrimage aboard the Meriden, Conn.
bus, and to his fortuitous rendezvous with, and his blessing by
Veronica, the Bayside seer, while Heaven approvingly looked on.
..........Christopher's physician had already been somewhat baffled
by his gains in motor movement (from a low of 7% at Easter,
he regained use of 86%. And the process of healing continues.
..............Christopher's recovery has been so spectacular that
he no longer needs his wheelchair. On June 28th, he walked two
miles unaided! All glory, praise and honor to Jesus and His wonderful
Mother, Our Lady of the Roses!
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG)
- Theresa has the permission of the Eternal Father to remain here
for the rest of the evening. She will also move about and look
upon the ill and infirm, because on her feast day and the feast
day of the guardians angels there will be many cures.
OCTOBER 6, 1988 (MSG)
- Jesus: You will cure two. Veronica: Oh, that is just wonderful!
I know they'll be very happy.................Now, My child, there
are two who will be cured this evening. To avoid all confusion,
I will lead you directly to those whom I wish that you will bless
with the crucifix of the Shrine of Our Blessed Mother..................Now,
My child, I wish that you take any rose petals available and go
to the infirm circle and give out also any available Rosaries.
My Mother and I will stand to the side while you do this. It will
be necessary for the cures, My child...................I tell
you now that there shall not be a cure found for the disease of
AIDS. It is a punishment from the Eternal Father. Unfortunately,
My children, there are many young innocents and those that are
older who have come in with the plan of God for the salvation
of their souls, but they, too, have fell victim to the AIDS plague.
It is a plague, My child, as other plagues shall also follow
this one.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG)
- My child and My children, there is one thing I wish to bring
to you this evening; that is the word of Russia. You do not understand
the great threat she is to the world. I say 'she' because We have
nothing else that exemplative of explaining the necessity to convert
Russia. Now My Mother in the past has told you through countless
earth-years of visits upon earth how to do this, I repeat from
My Mother Her words to the world some time ago (and I believe,
My child, you have been a voice-box before and a means for Heaven
to transport this message to the world) that is, that the Holy
Father in Rome, in unison with all of the bishops of the world,
must consecrate Russia to the Immaculate Heart of My Mother.
OCTOBER 6, 1992
(MSG) - The Infirm Circle: On September 30, 1980, Our Lord instructed
Veronica to set up a special area for the sick and suffering.
They would be the beneficiaries of outstanding graces at all
Vigils. However, if Veronica is present, there would be an added
grace, a blessing from her Shrine crucifix, gifted with the power
of cure and conversion and kissed affectionately and reverently
by Our lady at nearly every vigil Veronica attends. Veronica blesses
the afflicted with this invocation: "I bless you with the
Shield of the Immaculate Conception. In the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost..............Numerous cures
and conversions have been wrought, some of them massive, with
doctors statements and medical documentation providing authentication.
DARKNESS (LACK OF FAITH)
V O L U M E I
JULY 1, 1970
- My Rosary will be the light of the world. Prayer only can stop
the man of perdition. Half of the world is already in darkness.
No man is beyond the reach of satan. Many will perish in the engulfment.
There is salvation in prayer. Turn to My Son. Give Him your heart.
(vol I page 10)
JULY 15, 1970
- Do not defame My Son's Sanctuary! Visit My Son often for He
will protect you against the darkness. ................Do not
be ashamed of My Son's Crown. Why do you hide His Cross? Darkness
covers My Church. My Son is hurt. Turn to My Son.(vol I page 11)
AUGUST 5, 1970 - I weep for the murder of the holy innocents. Man has discovered sophisticated sin governed by body pleasures. Only satan could fashion such diabolical destruction. I wander the earth in tears. My children have forgotten Us. So many will be lost. Why won't you listen to Me? I plead with you as your Mother. Listen to Me before it is too late. The darkness grows deeper. So many souls will be lost. So many will be martyred. ................I have wandered far to try to save you but you choose to close your ears to My pleas. I have come to warn you, to save you. I wish to place My Mantle over all My children so that not one will be lost. The hand of the Father grows impatient. I hold back the darkness but His hand grows heavy.
......................My Rosary can
hold back the darkness. My Rosary can reach out and save those
souls already going down to the abyss. (vol I page 12)
AUGUST 14, 1970
- But My Immaculate Heart will triumph over all evil. The present
strife is but a symptom of the underlying sickness, the loss of
soul. Prayer is your beacon in the dark world. (vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1970
- Remain in communion with My Son for He will protect you. Visit
My Son often. You have many friends in Heaven. Be not guided by
fear but by prayer. Fear not the darkness for I carry the light.
(vol I page 14)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1970
- Open your eyes to the signs of the times and you will not be
in darkness. (vol I page 14)
OCTOBER 2, 1970
- You are the children of My Heart. I bless you from My Heart.
Your yoke will be heavy but only in relation to the penance needed
to save souls. Your prayers will recover many from the darkness.
...................Man's inhumanity to his brother is Our greatest
sorrow. There is blindness much worse than loss of physical sight,
the blindness of the heart. So many are heading for the flames
blindly. Man seeks to destroy the evidence of hell, but he will
learn the truth soon enough. Hell exists and Heaven exists. The
sins of the flesh send more souls to hell. ...........Bring My
Rosary to the children who wander further into the darkness. Who
will bring them into the light? You who love Me and My Son, must
carry this light into the darkness. See His Heart so pierced by
the sins of ungrateful man! Woe to those who lead the little ones
astray! Better they had died in their mother's wombs then to walk
the earth to destroy souls. (vol I page 15)
OCTOBER 6, 1970
- The recognition of Father will not be denied, for His disobedient
children will ask for a Father's Chastisement. I do not seek to
place fear in your hearts, but only the realization of the possible
consequences. Take heart for the dark days will be shortened for
the elect, the children who sought to comfort Us when We were
cast aside. (vol I page 16)
NOVEMBER 1, 1970
- We look down upon mass insanity! The legion of sick souls is
growing! Fear fills the hearts of those falling in darkness. (vol
I page 16)
Remember, My children, My Son is
always with you. He has a Home in every land. He will be always
with you. Though they seek to remove the Physical True Presence,
they cannot invade the world of the Spirit that will be the light,
that will guide you in the darkness. Man of Science forever searching.
Man of science seeking to find a consort in his quest. He will
find satan. (vol I page 16,17)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970
- Though the forces of evil have entered the Holy Church, they
will not destroy the Home of My Son. Do not abandon My Son because
of the present confusion, for We will rescue you from the darkness.
(vol I page 17)
DECEMBER 26, 1970
- Your sacrifice, My children, will be a tower of strength for
all who refuse to accept the Light in these dark days. While you
reject all body comforts, We look down upon warm hearts. Your
example will be the beacon, for they have closed their ears to
the Truth and remain blinded by worldly pursuits and pleasures.
It is sad to see, My children, that the Light has left many homes.
The children are walking in darkness. Must My Son forcefully admonish
you with a strong hand? So many of the good will then have to
suffer along...I repeat again that the punishment metered out
to you for the disobedience and turning away from God will be
more than your human minds can conceive possible! (vol I page
19)
Pray always for your priests, your
pastors, who are now confused. It is a way of satan, this confusion,
for men grow weak from confusion. Increase your numbers of Rosaries,
for they will always hold back the darkness. The graces you will
need will come from the Father because of His great Love of his
darkening world. (vol I page 20)
DECEMBER 31, 1970
- Observe the near future and open your eyes to the truth, for
the Hand of God is ready to strike! Those living in the light
have nothing to fear, for all body discomforts or destruction,
will only remove the shackles that bind our soul to this darkening
earth. (vol I page 20)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971
- I have tried to warn you, My children, but My warnings have
fallen on closed ears. I can no longer keep the darkness from
you! I beg you now to keep a constant vigil of prayer. He is here
now! Oh the sadness of hearts on this day. How We cry in Heaven
for the sadness ahead. He shall spread his destruction all over
the earth. The man of perdition is in your country! ................You
will not receive a kind ear from the clergy, for man can be wise
but stupid. Man has grown soft in the luxuries of his worldly
life. Man no longer seeks the Revelation in the Bible. I want
you, My child, to repeat the words of My Son, given to your young
son in his innocence of heart. I repeat the words of Jesus: My
heart is sobbing. My hands are bleeding. I long to see My creation
and be filled with Joy! The monuments, your statues, they MUST
be kept in your homes, for all who keep them in their homes will
be saved. The broken cross, the sign of the man of perdition,
the sign of the anti-Christ, so-called peace symbol, all who wear
this ARE DOOMED! The Rosary is broken, people do not take this
seriously, My children, how many signs must be given to you? The
man of perdition has spread his folly wide! The Light has not
passed through the Papal Village. He has kept it in darkness.
(vol I page 22)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971
- This man of perdition, this man out of hell, will spread his
darkness through Holy Church! Hold the Truth always in your heart!
Pray for your priests, your hierarchy, for the Faith has grown
weak! They will be victimized by the evil one who is now loose
in your Land. He will only possess a soul that has grown weak!
Strengthen your souls by staying with My Son, near the Tabernacles
of the world. Accept the gift of My Son often, His Physical Body,
present in your Eucharist, given to you only by consecrated hands
blessed by My Son and Ordained to do His Work and represent Him!
Turn you face from those who wish to profane the Body of My Son.
The Light of the Holy Spirit will guide you in this respect! The
indignities to My Son, the Eternal Father and all Heaven are increasing
with the increased destruction of the man of sin! His goal is
the possession of all spirits destined for My Son's Kingdom. (vol
I page 23)
MARCH 24, 1971
- There can be ultimate joy when we go beyond the dark days ahead
for My Immaculate Heart will triumph over the darkness. ................I
would like you to call on Michael often!! He is the guardian of
My House!... I must bring forth the sad truth, My children, that
a House in darkness will wear a band of death about it! ................To
survive in those days ahead you will have to learn to live in
the Spirit! Can you not understand the meaning? Talk to Us, My
children, with your hearts! Do not speak to Us with your lips!
We are waiting patiently! We need your love! Please, My children,
do not forget Us for only We will be able to carry you through
the darkness! (vol I page 25)
APRIL 3, 1971
- Be guided by the Holy Spirit that comes to you through the Eternal
Father. In the darkness He will guide those who keep Him in their
hearts. Our Father is the Lord High God, in Heaven. Defiled man
knows his father as the black prince of hell, and this father
of the dark abyss spreads destruction, fear, violence, hatred,
murder of innocent babies, hear Me now, and remember what I say,
you have brought the sword upon you by your own actions! For as
the Father gave you a free will to choose your road; if you sought
not the grace necessary to stay on the right road, it is because
there were too few prayers, to little who cared to save themselves
or you! ............My child, you must continue your mission without
fear or distraction. Stay within yourself as has been directed.
Pray, My child, pray day and night! I will always be with you;
for always in the darkness I will send forth a shower of graces
upon you, upon all who call to Me. (vol I page 26)
MAY 19, 1971 - Oh, My Jesus, how well the darkness covers the land. We look upon hate, greed, paganism and murder. The darkest of sins are being committed! Guard your children from the unholy ray. Keep the monuments (statues) in your home, keep the Rosary about your neck. These were not given for decoration. We cannot bear the blasphemies against Us much longer. We admonish you to save your soul and the souls of your loved ones. We are always with you, just raise your hearts in prayer to Us. Your prayers and sacrifices will be needed for your priests.
(vol I page 27)
We will continue to guide you in
the dark days ahead. We urgently beg you for acts of penance,
atonement, sacrifice daily. This will be all that can hold back
the darkness. (vol I page 27,28)
My child, tell the world now, there
is a hell! The evil one seeks to remove the thought of punishment
from sin. Sin will then be a way of life. It becomes easier to
delude you, then to capture your soul. Open your eyes, do not
be blind, for the blind walk in darkness! Everything about you
has been planned well to bring you into the darkness. Everything
is planned in every war! Without Us you will be lost. Do not try
to fight the battle alone. So they will scoff at angels and demons,
but will you scoff when you are face to face with them? Do not
follow the bad example like sheep to the slaughter block. Do not
let them blind you. You can carry the truth, the Light, always
in your heart! Show the example of a living Christ. Carry My Son's
Cross, for by your example you can save others, and We will reward
you. Do not let him take them from Us!
We don't wish to see one of Our children
lost to Lucifer. He now gives all God's children battle. There
is such turmoil in the world that We cannot come to you as often,
Veronica, for We are needed very badly in the battle of the spirits.
We listen to all who call Us. We will answer all who come to Us
in belief, come to Us, believe in Us, and you will be saved! I
have asked you to wear your Rosary to protect you from the evil
that now enshrouds the earth. Already those destined for My Kingdom
know Me. We know them! Those who have turned to Lucifer, who have
turned their backs on Us, We know them not! Soon, My child, iniquity
will so abound, that even many of the elect will be in fear to
be charitable. Yes, charity will grow cold. We have already impressed
on you the necessity for prayer. The power of prayer to chase
him out. If you do not listen, you too will walk into darkness.
You must not go around berating your brothers and sisters, you
must pray for them! Without prayer, you cannot fight satan! These
are not ordinary times, these are not ordinary days, no, if you
read the words left by the prophets, you will understand the Book
of Life. (Bible) (vol I page 28)
JUNE 17, 1971
- What is this darkness? You ask Me, My child. The darkness is
a blindness of heart! Yes, you can be conditioned to be confused
and no longer recognize the truth. You have a free will to go
your own way, should you fall, you must fall alone! We will not
let you take innocent souls with you. You are treading on My Son's
House and making it a place of self gratification for arrogant
man who follows after his own lusts! Your love of money has been
your downfall. Yes, you are misguided. There will be much suffering
for those who stand to defend My Son's House! This can never be
destroyed for the foundation is solid. The foundation is My Son!
But many now dishonor Him in His House. Blind man of self gratification,
blind man who pursues after his own heart, his lusts! You call
the hand of the Father down heavily upon you! This condition did
not arrive over night, or this year, or 2 years ago. Yes, it has
been well planned! ....delusions! (vol I page 29)
JULY 1, 1971
- Yes, I am truly the Mediatrix of Peace, the Mediatrix between
God and man, I have been given the Light by My Son to hold back
the darkness, but this will all be on your decision for you must
listen to Our direction. (vol I page 30)
JULY 25, 1971 - Oh, you blind, foolish parents who do not recognize the products of your laxity!! The blow, it will be visited upon you, for as you sow so shall you reap. Yes, you parents are filling the bodies and minds with luxuries, but you have chosen to starve the souls of your children. Your children are being led farther into the darkness. We do not see the light ahead for them. Oh, mournful sight, to see the destruction that is imminent upon you. Oh, mournful heart for you who do not listen. When this comes upon you, you will still not believe what you see with your eyes. Oh, My children, will you be counted among the few or will you be lost forever to Us?
.............You will continue to
disperse the message that We have given you in the past times.
We are approaching the final gathering of the souls. You will
send out the messages of the last days to all cardinals and bishops
as directed, for when My Hand comes upon you, My Warning will
have been sent throughout the world. When this Chastisement comes
upon you there will be no excuse for ignorance for in the truth
it will be that you have remained in the darkness and rejected
the Light. (vol I page 31)
AUGUST 5, 1971
- I have brought you the plan for your salvation. It will now
be your decision. You must eliminate the evil one in your schools,
your churches, your houses and your entire way of life which has
turned to satan. You must bring your children out of the darkness,
that their elders have cast them into. It will be the duty of
all parents to bring the truth to their children. It will not
be easy. You will have to fight the world and society but how
long will you be living in this society? Do you think of who will
be ahead of you? Have you forgotten the Kingdom? Have you given
your bodies and your souls for the pleasures of this world which
will soon be ended for you? (vol I page 32)
AUGUST 15, 1971
- The Chastisement will be from your God. Do not be misled by
those who defame the habits! Do not be led like sheep to the slaughter.
My Mother carries the Light in the darkness, the spiritual darkness
that now engulfs you all. (vol I page 33)
AUGUST 21, 1971
- There will be every chance given to every soul. It will be their
own choosing, should they continue in darkness and be visited
with the ultimate destruction. The darkness now covers the whole
earth. No Land is free from the infiltration of anti-Christ, My
child. Already there is a plan against your Country. You are not
safe in your security now, My children. I have tried to warn you,
but you have hardened your hearts and closed your ears to Our
pleas. My Shrine, here, will be an oasis in your barren land.
Many graces will be given from Our Hearts, My children, to you.
We will never abandon you in the darkness. We will not hold all
children responsible for their acts against God. We will hold
all the parents responsible for the destruction of their children's
souls! (vol I page 33)
Do We set fear in your hearts, My
children? Only those who have turned from Us have need to fear.
Only those who allow themselves to be led into the darkness have
need to fear. Before the destruction comes upon you, the word
will have spread throughout the earth. Already the sands of the
hour glass have spread throughout the earth. Already the sands
of the hour glass are running faster, the grains are few. Are
you ready, My children? I, too, am subject to the Will of the
Father. I would give you the last ounce of blood from My Heart
if I could save you. We do not wish to see one of Our children
lost to Us. (vol I page 34)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971
- The blind shall not enter My Kingdom unless they repent on free
will. (vol I page 34)
These words are placed in the Book
of love and Life. Believe in My Son and you will be given the
Way. Turn from Him and you will be left in the darkness. The enemy,
anti-Christ, has removed everything that will bring to mind the
Truth of Heaven. (vol I page 35)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1971
- He (anti-Christ) is working hard in My Son's House (Church).
But this you will remember in the days ahead, they will not be
triumphant. All evil is never triumphant. We will bring the sword
and destroy these evil one's in My Son's House! They have darkened
the souls of My children and I seek to bring them back to Me.
They who once were the light and now have walked into the darkness.
I give you the knowledge, My children. (vol I page 35)
Your balance, My children, will be
measured by the extent of the sin in your land and throughout
the world. Your offenses to your God. The hour has struck, My
children, there is no turning back! You can only hold back the
darkness now, I am not abandoning you in the days ahead. I will
always be with you, but the final decision will face them. (vol
I page 35,36)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971
- My child, you will make My message known to the world. We implore
all true hearts to spread My message. My words will be few, the
darkness is deeper. I have just come through the shadows. I have
with Me, My child, three guardian (angels) of My Son's House (Church).
He (anti-Christ) the evil one will not destroy My Son's House.
Yes, there will be many martyrs in the days ahead. All parents
must rescue their children from the evils of error! We advocate
the instructions of your children in the Faith. We do not want
their teachers to be the adversary's helpers, the followers of
the agents of hell who do not recognize the truth. ...........Weep
not for Me, My child, but cry for your children. But mothers cry
for your children for they are the true victims! I have begged
you to remove the corruption in your country and now covers like
the darkness of the abyss your government, your schools and My
Son's House. But you were apathetic to My warnings. What will
you do now? The hour grows late! Atonement, prayer, sacrifice.
We beg your prayers! Those of well spirit will bear this with
greater heart and courage, My child, but pity those who have descended
into darkness. Pity the shock of realization they will receive,
too late, too late. (vol I page 36)
OCTOBER 7, 1971
- You will all absorb what has been given to you in the past months
of your earth time, and you will read these well, and you will
prepare yourself now for what lies ahead of you, the severity
of which will depend on your atonement and you penance. The battle
is on now My children. You will find yourself divided soon. Those
who remain true to My Son will be given the light in the dark
days. We will not abandon any to Lucifer for all who call for
your help and assistance will receive the graces to carry them
through. (vol I page 38)
NOVEMBER 1, 1971
- Prayer, sacrifice, atonement. We ask little of you. All can
be summed up in one word: Love. All parents will guard their children's
souls. All parents will be held responsible for their children's
souls. Pray for the Light that you may not be led into the darkness.
I have stressed the plan for your salvation many times. You will
act upon it now or fail! You cry peace, peace, when there is no
peace! You cry security when there is no security! You open you
country's door to add to the brood of Vipers (U.N.) You have left
the narrow road and your road grows wider! For those who receive
in abundance much will be expected, and woe to those who have
received the Light, to turn it into blackness! Stay with Us! Flee
from the evil of the serpent that now runs across your land! Accept
not a drop of his venom because you are not strong enough without
the Light to reject it! (vol I page 38,39)
NOVEMBER 20, 1971
- Your country will go into great darkness, but We will carry
the light. Many will light their candles with Me, to carry the
light in the darkness. Perseverance, confidence, My children,
in the days ahead. We will not abandon you. There will be many
trials. Do not be apathetic to the situation in your land, My
children, if you sit back you will be removed from your homes
and your land. You must organize a solid front, yes, link to link,
soul to soul, across your land. (vol I page 39)
DECEMBER 7, 1971
- Prayer, sacrifice, atonement! Pray for the light; pray for all
clergy. My Heart is filled with tears at the numbers fast going
into darkness. Will they not recognize the evil that has entered
upon My Son's House? (church) Our clergy must read Our Bible.
They no longer find the Revelations in Our Book of Light and Life.
Remember, My children, the day will come, after much suffering,
when My Son will return to set all right again. Persevere against
the forces of evil that now enshrouds your earth. Be nourished
by the presence of My Son among you (Eucharist). Hold back the
darkness! (vol I page 40)
DECEMBER 24, 1971
- I wish to bring you tidings of great joy, but, My children,
tonight there is great sorrow in Our Hearts. We look upon a full
conspiracy. The evil is widespread throughout your country. Many
have fallen because of their love of money and power over the
peoples. It is those who do not recognize their God as being the
Eternal Master, it is they who have developed the plan of destruction
of your children and your country. An evil power enshrouds your
world now, a power strengthened by the demons now loosed from
the abyss. We see the earth covered in darkness. The victims of
your decadent society are your children, the innocent victims
of their elders. Have you not recognized the advent of anti-Christ
into your land! Into your government, your schools, your news
medias, and yes, now into My Son's House (Church)! (vol I page
40)
A merciful God, Who asks for repentance,
Who asks you to mend your ways now for your future is limited.
Recognize the signs of the times. Your country, your world, your
church, are being destroyed from within! The gates of hell shall
not prevail against My Son's Church, but Oh, the souls that are
being lost to Us now. The advance of the darkness will all be
on your decision! Those of grace must carry the Light! (vol I
page 40,41)
DECEMBER 31, 1971
- Prepare the young souls well, for as they go without the family
door, it will stand them well in the onslaughts of satan, so evident
in excess about them; this darkness that covers the world. Be
you not ignorant of the fact that there are loosed on your earth
inhabitants of the abyss, demons of the latter days struggle,
who will gather as agents of hell, bent on souls destruction and
searching up new inhabitants for the kingdom of Lucifer. Your
children of tender years are led very easily, the world is now
a giant web! I would spare you, My children, from this terrible
fact, but you must be alerted to these agents. Do not be misled
also by those who parade as angels of Light, but are truly ravenous
wolves carrying the venom of satan. Do not be conditioned to accept
evil. Your first allegiance is to your God. ..............All
humans are subject to temptation, error and the decision to accept
the Light or the darkness, on free will. The choice will be given
to all to accept or reject My Son, before the arrival of the cataclysm.
The word will go throughout the world. (vol I page 41)
MARCH 24, 1972
- My children, the evil has accelerated! I see the deep darkness
in My Son's House (Church). Many Rosaries, many prayers are needed
for your Vicar..............Many will leave your earth unprepared!
Pray that this darkness will not enter upon your house! We place
the greatest responsibility upon parents at this time; to guard
and armor their children's souls, from the evil which will increase!
(vol I page 44)
MARCH 25, 1972
- My child, I am not here to fill you with fright; all will be
good for those of well spirit. I am not here to rescue the good,
but to awaken those who have turned their backs and are following
Lucifer! Your world is in darkness! Our House is in darkness!
I roam, My children, throughout the world carrying the Light;
My steps grow heavy. The Light is flickering. Won't you light
your candle with Me and help Us in this war of the spirits? (vol
I page 45)
All who do not recognize My Son as
the Savior shall not be given keys to the Kingdom. My Son, in
the Father has given you all an inborn conscience, and guardians
that you would not fall prey to the agents of satan or his planned
elements. Should you throw away Our graces, you will become blind,
in darkness, until you will no longer recognize the truth! (vol
I page 46)
APRIL 1, 1972
- Continue your prayers and sacrifices for your Vicar. The enemy
has a well-founded plan to remove him from the seat of Peter.
The enemy is waiting, who will recrucify My Son! Only you can
help to hold back the darkness that is now smothering truth within
My Son's House (Church). Our Church will rise triumphant in the
final count, but how many souls must fall to satan before that
time? How many who have been given the power in My Son's House
are using this power to destroy souls. They have aligned themselves
with satan!
You have all been given an inborn
conscience. You must reject the plan of satan and not succumb
to his lures! The world about you has become the playground of
satan and his agents. Your world is in darkness. Our Church is
in darkness; but We still carry the light. All who follow Me,
My children, will be led out of the darkness. The punishment would
be upon you this day but for the numbers of souls that satan would
capture now. (vol I page 49)
APRIL 10, 1972
- My child, you will make it known to Our high priests that they
are not to become involved in politics of the world. They are
being led into the web that will take them into deep darkness.
Hearken now, and heed My words you are being blindly led into
darkness!......How many tears We shed, My children, seeing the
numberless souls that are being lost to Us! Please, won't you
light your candles with Me, and search through the darkness and
ransom your wandering brothers and sisters? (vol I page 50)
MAY 30, 1972
- Our joy is multiplied this evening by the numbers of Our children
who have come to Our defense in the war against satan. The evil
he promotes has accelerated. Unless you become knowledgeable and
recognize his handiwork, the end of your era will be hastened.
Unless you turn from worldly affections and give yourself to My
Son, you will be lost in the darkness. (vol I page 52)
JUNE 8, 1972
- Your city is a cesspool of sin! Many cities in your country
have become dark with sin! Will you continue to seek the way in
darkness? Understand, My children, that you are in a hard battle.
The abyss is open and when you are in Our Light the forces of
evil are doubled against you. Therefore, be watchful!..........My
beads of prayer have been given to you. I promise, now, all who
tell My beads daily shall be saved from the trials that lie ahead.
I have asked for the beads to go across your country, link to
link, a solid chain to hold back the darkness. (vol I page 54)
JUNE 9, 1979
- I know of the great distress among nations today. As your time
on earth, My children, becomes shorter, you will find that there
will be many tragedies set among you. These tragedies will come
through sickness of the body and sickness of the soul. We can
say that there are many bodies now walking throughout your earth
with dead souls, for the Spirit, the Light, has left them and
their bodies now are shrouded in darkness. ...........O My children,
as I repeat myself to you over and over again, I have gone
constantly as your Mother walking upon your earth, guiding you
out of the darkness. How often have I cried out to you to prepare
your household, to safeguard your children, and to maintain the
true knowledge of your Faith and My Son's Church in your homes
and in the hearts of the young.........My children, I beg of you
as your Mother, as a Mother of love and understanding, that you
in charity of heart pray for your Bishops, pray for your Cardinals
and all clergy, who are under now attack by 666, satan and the
forces of hell. Wherever there is darkness so will the agents
of hell gather. Know by this, My children, the predominance of
sin will give you a signal that onto this position and location
have gathered the agents of hell. (vol II page 223)
JULY 15, 1972
- The world is now in deep darkness, I see the candles burning
now; they will lead the sheep out of the darkness. You will pray
and make many sacrifices for the recovery of My Son's representatives
(priests). Many have succumbed to the evils of the flesh. Many
will go down the road of damnation and take others with them............There
is great darkness in My Son's House (Church), many have sold their
souls to reach the head. Your Vicar will soon join the increasing
list of martyrhood!...........There was a time, My child, when
satan used only the world, but now he is in My Son's House, roaming!
He has kept it in darkness! He shall not be victorious, but many
tears will be shed before My Son intervenes. (vol I page 56)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972
- I have promised to be with you in the dark days ahead. I intend
to stay with you in the dark days ahead, and guide all those who
will not shut Me out of their hearts. My Son will be with you,
and He cries for your understanding in the dark days ahead, that
you will not go the easy road and desecrate His Body. The dark
days ahead will be a test for all. It will be like placing the
mettles in the fire, and the separating of the sheep from the
goats. All cannot enter; yea, I say, none can enter unless they
repent of their sins and cast aside the evil which they have allowed
to become a way of life for them, and this must be done on free
will. (vol I page 63,64)
DECEMBER 24, 1972
- But there is one great hope that you must always keep in your
heart, that My Son in the Father will be victorious. It is, and
has been, from the beginning of the time of your earth, deemed
that these moments on earth (times) of tribulations would approach.
The darkness was held beck by the prayers and penance of many.
And the darkness can still be held back with a major reversal
(of ways) and a turning from the man of sin who is day by day
claiming more victims! You will continue to pray and make sacrifices
for your clergy. They are given many graces by their ordination,
but they, too, are under subject to attack, great attack, by the
adversary, satan. You must pray that they do not fall into darkness.
For in this way they would have the opportunity to take many souls
with them to hell (should they fall). (vol I page 73)
DECEMBER 31, 1972
- Gather My sheep, each one seeking his brother! Go out to the
pastures that are rich but filled with poison. Save My sheep from
the darkness, My children, this I ask you, for many tears will
be shed upon your earth, before long. Approach these days with
great hope, and live your life in the spirit of light. A life
of penance, atonement and great sacrifice not only for yourselves,
but for your loved ones, and others who do not have the grace
to save their own souls. For they need you, My children, and I
need you, for I love you as the Father. We expect the return of
each of you to Us. Do not turn your back on the path, for it is
very difficult to return, My children, when you go too far off
the path. (vol I page 76,77)
JULY 1, 1973
- Your world is in deep spiritual darkness. The Message from Heaven
is reaching all of the far corners of your earth. It is in the
will of mankind, allowed by the Eternal Father, for all to hear
the Message and to make their own choice. In the days, the days
that will lead to the great crucible of suffering, there will
be a gradual separation of the sheep from the goats. (vol I page
114)
JULY 25, 1973
- I do not often speak out, but the world has sent itself into
spiritual darkness. All Heaven now mobilizes for the final battle.
It is through the providence of the Father that we of Heaven are
permitted to speak with you. It is through the merciful heart
of the Father that you are being warned. The destruction will
come fast upon you, and we pity those souls unprepared.. (vol
I page 118)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973
- The greatest barrier is intellectual pride among the men of
God. Once they remove this barrier by much penance and return
to prayer, the blindness will be taken from them and they will
see the errors of their ways. Pray, My children, pray much for
them. The power of prayer is great with the Father. (vol I page
129)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1973
- Many will see and still not believe. Pray for those who have
covered themselves with blindness. When I speak to you, My child,
of blindness, it is the state of the spirit. The world of man
has lost sight of the road to the Kingdom. (vol I page 131)
NOVEMBER 1, 1973
- Did I not warn you that the agents of darkness would try to
stop the truth? Have no fear, My child. It is not man that you
should fear. Man has lost his way; he is in deep darkness. Darkness
has entered into the hearts of many. Many in My Son's House now
have gone down the road to darkness. Pray for them, My child.
Do not castigate hem in any way, but pray that they may be given
the light...........So now prepare for the days ahead. Pray much,
wear your sacramentals, and beware of the sunrise. Do not look
up to the flash. Pray; pray much during those days. The world
will go into deep darkness. Prayer will be your only recourse.
The light will flicker throughout the world, and man will be plunged
into heavy darkness. My Mother will be here on these sacred grounds.
(vol I page 143)
NOVEMBER 24, 1973
- My child, as We look upon the deepening darkness of earth, the
spirits of darkness that cover your world, We look into your books
of knowledge and find many of your earth words; charity, piety,
goodness; being removed. All the creations of satan to seduce
you and take you down into the bottomless pit are being placed
at your disposal. (vol I page 146)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974
- There has been, My child, great question on the place in your
world of evil created by satan. Yes, satan rules, now, upon your
world but his time grows short. He will accomplish no more than
the Father allows. This world of darkness will soon give way to
the light. However, My child, much conflict, much confusion and
the loss of many lives will take place before the final cleansing...........I
can only promise you a short reprieve, for, at the present time,
I see much evil developing in your country. There has entered
into your country a new worship of idols. Man is going deeper
into the darkness, ever searching, but going farther from the
truth. The truth lies in every man's heart if he will open his
heart to the Father. How many, My child, are counted in darkness!
They count in the millions. (vol I page 159)
APRIL 13, 1974
- What is the darkness, you ask, My child? The darkness I speak
of, is the great darkness of the spirit. Learn a simple lesson
of faith: What does it gain a man if he gains the whole world
and suffers the loss of his soul? Would you give a thousand pounds
of silver for one day in the abyss? (vol I page 191)
JUNE 8, 1974
- My child, your heart is heavy. You join Us in Our great sorrow.
A great darkness covers the world. It is in darkness of the spirit.
The road you travel will be a road filled with thorns. The cross
will be heavy as you follow the path of My Son. (vol I page 209)
JUNE 18, 1974
- My child, it is with great joy that I look upon the loving souls.
My Mother has been sent to you as a Mediatrix from the Father.
You will listen to Her counsel, for you stand in great trial in
the days to come. It is only through the intercession of My beloved
Mother that you will be directed out of the darkness. (vol I page
224)
AUGUST 21, 1974
- The powers that have now grown beyond all expectations, the
evil powers of darkness, have control now, My child. (vol I page
246)
I need not repeat My words of the
past, My child, that the evil forces of satan, using the bodies
of mankind, those who have fallen to satan, they will be used
to lead astray Our children. Unless you wear your sacramentals
and remain close to My Son in the tabernacles of the world, you
will not escape falling into the darkness; the darkness of spirit
that is reaching out and covering the world now, almost completely,
I say almost, My child, for there are still lights of heavenly
beams, shining forward to guide those who are looking for the
way. The Way is My Son. (vol I page 247)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1974
- Many are allowed to be blinded as penance to them for they must
find their way out of the darkness that they have allowed themselves
to fall into. Pray, pray, a constant vigilance of prayer. (vol
I page 269)
DECEMBER 6, 1974
- Already My warnings have fallen upon hardened hearts and deafened
ears. The blindness is spreading throughout My Son's Houses. You
must now pray a constant vigilance of prayer. Your country has
set itself upon the road to its own destruction. Pray a constant
vigilance. (vol I page 302)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975
- You will stand, My children in example. You will remain true
to your Faith for it is not mankind that you are fighting but
the spirits of evil, the forces of darkness, that cover your world.
Know that the victory will be with you and My Son and one day
We will all rejoice in the Kingdom knowing that We have returned
from a mission that was well done. (vol I page 333)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975
- Veronica: Our Lady is pointing up, and I see two dignitaries.
They look like Cardinals. Now one is holding a key, a very large
golden key and the other now is counting out, what looks like
large silver pieces. ................You see, My child, they are
re-crucifying My Son for pieces of silver, for worldly gain. It
is time all repeated. Your world is in a spiritual darkness, far
worse then in the time of Noah. (vol I page 334)
MARCH 22, 1975
- Understand, My children, when I speak of darkness of the spirit,
satan must assume the body of a fallen man, woman or child, to
promote his diabolical deception. Sadly to say, My child, satan
has captured the minds of many in high places! This condition,
My child, did not come about in one move but has crept upon you
through the course of time and planning by satan. My warnings
of the past also fell on deafened ears and hardened hearts. What
shall you do not? (vol I page 345)
MAY 28, 1975
- My Heart will shine in your darkened world, My Blood shall be
your salvation. (vol I page 370)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- Many prayers are needed for your clergy. The leaders of many
have gone into deep darkness, through false ideology, maxims of
modernism and humanism mankind has entered into a delusion. All
who have followed satan will fall fast into darkness of spirit,
no longer recognizing the light. When I return shall there be
even a small light of Faith left upon your earth? The numbers
saved will be counted in the few. (vol I page 395)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975
- Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, My child and My children.
Many prayers are needed for your hierarchy. Many have sold their
souls to get to the head; so great is the power of satan in your
world. No man can fully understand, My child, why the Father allows
the world to go forward in great spiritual darkness. It is to
separate the sheep from the goats; for those who have given themselves
to satan and the world shall fling themselves headlong into the
abyss and hell. And those who have set themselves on the narrow
road that leads straight to the Eternal Kingdom of the Father
in Heaven shall find their road filled with crosses, thorns. They
shall be cast aside and called 'different.' They shall be abused
and all manner of worldly punishment; however, know that this
is the road to the Kingdom of Heaven. It is not an easy road,
but one that is strengthened by suffering. (vol I page 440)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975
- We are not in a fortune-telling business, My child. Warn those
who read the Message from Heaven that they must not become engrossed
in the false science of astrology. It is a creation of satan.
Only the Eternal Father guides the lives of mankind. Man has a
free will and can defy the Eternal Father; but then, he is left
upon his own to fight his way through the darkness. He will be
divested of graces that will be necessary to bring him out of
the darkness. (vol I page 446)
DECEMBER 31, 1975
- Your world now has plunged itself into deep darkness of spirit.
Come out of that darkness, My pastors! You have been given many
warnings, and they have fallen upon deafened ears! How many warnings
do you think you shall receive from Heaven? You are misleading
Our sheep! The Red Hats shall stand before Me, and shall you say
to Me that your teaching has been pure in My sight? Away from
Me, I shall cast you into the abyss! Vipers, join the brood of
vipers, soul-destroyers! (vol I page 466)
MAY 28, 1975
- Open, My children, My children of the light, your hearts to
those who have gone into darkness. Offer, in your charity, My
children, prayers of atonement for your brothers and sisters who
have gone into darkness. Only a few will be saved to the final
count. (vol I page 370)
DECEMBER 31, 1975
- Satan shall seek out your country wherever there is darkness
of spirit, and in those places, My child, all manner of evil shall
spring up, evil such as has never been seen upon your earth! Human
beings infested by the devil, working all manners of evil against
their brother and sister! O, My child could I promise you all
love and light? Shall I deceive you by opening a picture of peace
and joy to you? I cannot lie and bring you what pleases human
nature. This has all been cast aside by mankind who has placed
science and technology above his God. My child, you will all keep
a constant vigilance of prayer? Prayer, penance and atonement
shall be your rule now, My children! Do much penance and make
much atonement for the sins of mankind. In this manner We will
gather those who are to be saved. (vol I page 4)
APRIL 10, 1976
- Because mankind has fallen into darkness of spirit and allowed
to be blinded by the Father, he no longer recognizes sin until
sin has become a way of life. I say unto you cardinals, Red Hats
in My Son's Church; you are extending in one hand, your left hand,
a hand of friendship, and you shall receive the shiv. (vol I page
479,480)
APRIL 17, 1976
- My child, for those who have gone into darkness of spirit or
fallen into the errors of your day, know that they will not understand
much of Our Message to the world. It is because they have been
allowed to be blinded by the Eternal Father. They have ears that
do not hear; they have hearts that have hardened because of sin;
they have eyes that will not see. But to those who have even a
small measure of faith like a seed in a garden of flowers, if
they but give this seed a small water of life, it will grow and
grow and bear great beauty and fruit. (vol I page 483)
MAY 15, 1976
- A deep spirit of darkness now covers your earth, and has entered
to do great battle upon the Holy City of Rome. (vol I page 488)
MAY 26, 1976
- My voice, My children, and the voice of many from Heaven have
cried out to warn you, to prepare you, for you hold the balance
for your own destruction or salvation. Your country and many countries
throughout the world now are in the darkness of spirit. Your medias
of communication are controlled. Can you find the truth among
atheists? The truth, My children, you will have to carry in your
hearts. Shall My Son come back and find even a small light of
faith left upon your earth? (vol I page 490)
MAY 29, 1976
- Man shall reject what he refuses to accept, even if it is a
truth. He will refuse because of two prominent reasons. One, he
has become blind, blind through sin. He has become misled and
deluded. (vol I page 493)
JUNE 5, 1976
- Darkness of spirit has entered upon your country and the world.
Pray much, My children, for the value for life and the living
grows dim. In your world of spiritual darkness, there shall be
a loss for the love of life. Death will become commonplace as
man loses his love of neighbor. But first and above all, he has
lost his love of his God. (vol I page 498)
JUNE 18, 1976
- Spiritual darkness is a wall, a wall that shuts out the light.
You will all continue with a constant vigilance of prayer. My
beads of prayer to mankind, the Rosary, shall lead you across
your land. Recognize, My children, all of the graces given from
Heaven for your enlightenment, enrichment and fulfillment. (vol
I page 505)
JULY 24, 1976
- It is sad, My child, that there are so many delusions and errors
prevalent upon earth. The souls fall into deep darkness, as they
are misguided by Our clergy and those who have cast aside the
light to run fast headlong into the darkness. (vol I page 511)
It is sad, My children, that We have
to look upon a world that has become much darker, more corrupted
and defiled than in the time of Noe or Sodom. Awaken now from
your slumber My pastors. There is not much time left to gather
My sheep. And shall you stand before Me and say that your teaching
of My sheep has been pure in My sight? No!! I say unto you; many
of you have fallen asleep. (vol I page 514)
NOVEMBER 1, 1976
- O men of the cross, you have fallen in with satan. Awaken from
your slumber. Recognize that you are being deceived. This delusion
has been set upon you, allowed by the Eternal Father. In this
manner shall you be separated, for what is there in common between
the light and the darkness? You will remain with those is darkness
of spirit, or you will take yourselves away and suffer all to
remain in the light, and follow this light to the Eternal Kingdom.
If you choose of your free will to remain in this darkness, shall
you be given the time to be recovered? Nay, I say unto you. Many
shall die in the great flame of the Ball of Redemption. (vol
I page 554,555)
Do not be misguided by those who,
in the spirit of darkness, take the knowledge of the supernatural
from you. Yes, in order, My children, to stay in the light, you
will be rejected by many; you will be scorned; you will be called
insane; because, I repeat; there is nothing in common between
the light and the darkness. As they rejected Me upon your earth,
you, too, must go the way of the cross. But carry your cross,
My children, with purpose and fortitude. And I assure you, as
your God, that the road you follow in the light will be well worth
your perseverance. The joys of Heaven are for all, but all do
not attain this height, My children, for they are not willing
to sacrifice and do penance and to follow the way of the cross.
(vol I page 555)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976
- This My child and My children, is what will be; in darkness
will they seek the way? But this, My child, is what will be; in
darkness will they seek the way, or shall they continue to give
themselves into all manner of evil, worship of false idols, placing
their God away and setting idols to worship? Astrology is a science,
a false science for unbelievers. (vol I page 556,557)
Through error, confusion, and outright
deception, there is a great darkness closing in upon the Eternal
City of Rome. There is a great darkness covering all the lands
now of your earth, and there is a great darkness enveloping the
very nature of mankind, and many now walk the earth with living
bodies and dead souls! And you ask, My children, can there be
a revival a renewal? And what do you seek to revive and renew
but Lucifer! (vol I page 559)
DECEMBER 7, 1976
- Pray, My children, a constant vigilance of prayer, and, in your
charity, extend your heart to your brothers and sisters who are
traveling in darkness, darkness of spirit. Upon your earth, My
children, death is everywhere, for sin is death, and there are
many human bodies that are carrying dead souls within them. And
I repeat; as it was in the past, so shall it be now, for the dead
shall be burying the dead. (vol I page 566)
The world, the peoples of earth,
My children, are in great darkness of spirit. Were this darkness,
to reach only the lay peoples, there would be not that much concern,
My child, but now My heart is torn to watch as those dedicated
go deeper into darkness. It is a scale that is graduating through
leadership. The evil is accelerating. Satan is poisoning the minds
of many. Those in leadership, who should know better, are now
using their rank to destroy souls. The measure of iniquity is
the gauge, the scale, for the coming Warning and Chastisement.
..........O My children, take the blindness from your hearts and
your eyes. Recognize the signs of your times and the path you
have set yourselves upon.(vol I page 568)
DECEMBER 28, 1976
- There will be, I repeat, much woe set upon the earth by the
evil forces now loosed upon your earth. Recognize these signs
and act upon them. Protect your children; protect your homes;
and above all, pray that you too will not be led into darkness.
(vol I page 578)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977
- Your world is covered with deep darkness. And the wages of sin
is death! O My children, many shall die in the body upon earth,
but do not cry for the loss of the body, but cry tears of deep
anguish for the loss of the soul, for many are falling fast into
hell, forever banished from the Kingdom of Heaven into nothingness
and despair. The fires of hell, My children, are so fierce in
emotion and far beyond what any human mind could comprehend in
explanation. Should I show to you, My child and My children, the
full forces of hell that are loosed upon your earth, your body
could not withstand the torment! You would die immediately in
your body, My children. (vol II page 20)
MARCH 18, 1977
- And why has man progressed so far into darkness of spirit? Because,
My children, he did not pray enough; mankind in the past have
gone by unnoticed and not acted upon. How many warnings must be
given to mankind before they come out of their darkness of spirit
and recognize that the agents of hell are gathering in force about
them?. (vol II page 26)
APRIL 2, 1977
- My children, I ask you and I have asked you through Scripture
to remain as children in your hearts, but I did not ask you to
be stupid and recognize the difference between light and darkness.
They have no compatibility. (vol II page 32)
APRIL 9, 1977
- You ask, My child, in pleading, what does the future hold? Man
holds a great part of his destiny in his hand, My child. The Eternal
Father has watched with patience and charity of heart as man goes
blindly farther into the darkness. (vol II page 36)
JUNE 16, 1977
- I promised you in the past, and I say again, your world, earth,
shall not be completely destroyed as it was in the past by the
Eternal Father, but know mankind shall go through a crucible of
suffering! Slowly, out of all of this suffering, shall mankind
emerge anew and refreshed and bathed in the light of his God.
Darkness shall be dispelled, but not without suffering. You will
be left to your own deviations. It will appear that the light
has completely been extinguished in the world as man bathes himself
in darkness, as man goes forward gaining more knowledge and more
knowledge, but proceeding farther away from his God until one
day his ultimate in knowledge shall be his own destruction. (vol
II page 58)
JUNE 18, 1977
- Pray, My children of the light, for those who do not come out
of the darkness. No one shall be cast into the abyss and damned
to hell unless he goes there of his own free will. (vol II page
61)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1977
- My child and My children, the world has entered into deep darkness
of spirit. All of the forces of hell are now loosed upon your
earth. The retainer, Michael, was rejected by many, and the evil
one, the adversary, satan, had to come forth from the pits, the
abyss of hell, to do final battle with mankind. ............My
children, recognize the given signs of your times. It is a battle
now to the finish; it is a battle now that will lead to the separation
of the sheep from the goats. (vol II page 84)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977
- My child, you have spent many hours in searching the truth of
the evil forces now loosed in your immediate area of New York.
Satan, the evils of satanism, only appear when sin has become
a way of life, and the evil has brought an immense blanket of
darkness to an area. 666, satan in human form, is wherever darkness
is. He is the prince of darkness, the father of all liars, the
master of deceit. And I say, My children, the master of deceit
for he is cunning beyond all human understanding. (vol II page
105)
APRIL 1, 1978
- The greatest gift you can bring to your fellow man now is to
make him believe. Many are deeply entrenched in darkness of the
spirit and without your help the many will be lost to satan; eternal
damnation and banishment. (vol II page 138)
MAY 3, 1978
- The world, the earth, is now covered in deep spiritual darkness.
It is a sad fact, My children, that man has not profited by his
past nor learned through a bad experience. Therefore, I have come
to warn you over and over that, unless you turn from your ways
that offend your God and return the state of earth into even a
small resemblance of its glory under God, you will receive a most
terrible Chastisement. And many shall die in the Ball of Redemption.
(vol II page 141)
MAY 13, 1978
- See, My child and My children, the sufferings inflicted anew
upon My Son. These sufferings are increasing daily by the blasphemy
and the abominations being committed in His House upon earth,
His Church. His Divine Presence has been sullied. Pray, My children,
for you brothers and sisters who are in deep spiritual darkness.
Pray for hell is fast filling up and purgatory is overflowing
with souls. So few are entering into the Kingdom without long
stays in purgatory. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer, My children.
(vol II page 147)
MAY 20, 1978
- The armies of hell are gathering. They enter wherever darkness
of spirit prevails, My children, 666, satan and his agents from
hell, now have control in every country of the earth! And sad
to say, now the battle rages in Rome, the Eternal City. (vol II
page 149)
JUNE 1, 1978
- There are many now in your world who have become, given themselves
over to satan, Lucifer, Luciel, known to you. Satan is Lucifer
and his agents. They gather together throughout the world wherever
there is darkness of spirit to do great battle with the children
of God. (vol II page 161)
JULY 25, 1978
- There are many now false Christ's upon earth. There are many
lying teachers, false teachers. All this is but the surface indications
for all to see of the state of the world in spiritual darkness.
(vol II page 173)
AUGUST 14, 1978
- My children, unless you pray and do penance now, your world
will go into such darkness of spirit that man shall become as
an animal! Trials upon earth, both physical and spiritual, will
bring about the time when man shall envy the dead!! Charity will
grow cold in the hearts of many, so great will be the evil. .............My
children, you are as a man, divided. Your spirit is darkened while
your body and worldly inclinations capture you in a prison where
you seek nothing but pleasures of the flesh and sensuality. You
must now divest yourselves, strip yourselves of all worldly seeking
or you will be lost! A house divided will fall! A church divided
will close its doors! Only a remnant will survive. Be it know
that when I return, will I expect, may I expect to find even a
small flicker of faith left upon earth?! (vol II page 181)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978
- My child and My children, My heart is very sad that I must bring
you this urgent but final Message from Heaven. The Eternal Father
has sent Me as a Mediatrix from Heaven. The Eternal Father has
sent Me as a Mediatrix from God to man all about your world, the
earth, crying out warnings from Heaven to mankind, warnings that
only a few have heeded. And now the hour is approaching, the hour
of darkness and sadness. Many parents shall have tears of anguish
brought into their homes by the coming events. (vol II page 200)
JUNE 18, 1979
- It brings great sorrow to My heart and the heart of My Son in
the Eternal Father and the Spirit of Light, that is being diminished
in the hearts of many; it brings Me great sorrow to know as I
watch My children upon earth proceeding farther into the darkness
created by sin. Sin is insanity, it shall be recognized among
you as your see and recognize the signs of your times. (vol II
page 226)
JULY 25, 1979
- My child and My children, I don't think it necessary for Me
to go into a long discourse on the state of your world, the spiritual
state. Needless to say, man now through his own volition has covered
the whole world in deep spiritual darkness. In the plan of the
Eternal Father there are candles of light, pockets of knowledge
in the hearts of those chosen by the Eternal Father to maintain
the truth of the Faith. This knowledge must include Tradition.
........... How much longer can My tears flow over you, My heart
is torn again and again as I see My children progressing farther
into spiritual darkness, giving themselves over to all manners
of sin. Sins of the flesh are daily sending many souls into damnation,
hell. (vol II page 233)
As the darkness deepens upon your
earth, your world will appear to many like insanity has set upon
it! Murders will increase, accidents called 'freaks of nature,'
accidents that are not accidents. Children will continue to rise
up against their parents, being encouraged by their schools, their
teachers, their news medias and all of the medias that have been
well-planned to seduce the souls of your children. And the master
behind these medias is Lucifer and his agents from hell walking
now in human form. (vol II page 234)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1979
- My children, you are like candles going throughout the darkness,
but you must persevere and look for your lost brethren. If you
return even one of My lost children to the fold, there will be
much joy and celebration in Heaven. (vol II page 245)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979
- Already the forces of evil have gathered; and your country,
the United States, which has now proceeded into spiritual darkness,
shall suffer a great crisis. The time for being optimistic has
passed by. Your country, the United States of America, shall be
chastised. My heart is bereaved by the knowledge of the loss of
great life that will come about in this minor chastisement. Wars
are a punishment for man's sins. .............My children of the
world, you stand now upon a hill, a hill that you have built upon
humanistic values and materialistic manners, as you sought to
build a world of your own; cutting off the light, and building
a utopia, built with humanism and socialism, and communism; all
under the heading of love and brotherhood, but covered with a
blanket of darkness of the spirit. For this, the Eternal Father
has allowed you to pursue your own course. The awakening shall
come in shock to many. (vol II page 262)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979
- We do not seek to place fear in your heart, but to bring to
you a message of warning and counsel, My Mother shall not reject
you, even in your debasement. I shall not reject you, My children.
The Eternal Father, in the Spirit of Light, shall not reject you.
But will you reject Us in Heaven now? You will be the loser. Reject
the light, accept the darkness of sin, and you lose eternal life
in Heaven. (vol II page 252)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979
- Oh My children, you are truly My little children, for many times
a child must be reprimanded and chastised. However, in your freedom
of will, you have become all-willed in your pursuits, relying
upon your men of science, who have taken you into spiritual darkness.
(vol II page 265)
DECEMBER 24, 1979
- O my children, how happy were the days when I could look down
from Heaven upon you and find that America was so beautiful, a
Christian nation, devout, pious and following the road as given
by the Eternal Father, through My Son, and the Holy Spirit of
light. And now the light has been darkened. (vol II page 268)
JUNE 18, 1980
- You will continue to pray for your cardinals, your bishops,
your priests, My Son's Church, His House upon earth. By your example
many will saved. By your prayers and example there is salvation
for others. Continue now with your prayers of atonement. They
are sorely needed, for the world is in great spiritual darkness.
Satan has poisoned many minds. (vol II page 272)
MAY 30, 1981
- My child and My children, I have always promised to protect
you and all who call to Me. But the powers, the forces of evil,
have been allowed to enter even into My Son's Church. The smoke
or darkness, darkness of the spirit covers the world. Already
many have reached the point of no return. Pray, My child and My
children, a constant vigilance of prayer. (vol II page 282)
How long, the voices of those who
are persecuted and must die, are saying, the voices rise to Heaven,
join with the saints: How long, O Lord, shall you continue to
find excuses upon excuses as these generations of degenerates
have progressed into a spiritual darkness and depravity far worse
that even during the time of Noe or Lot? How long, O Lord, shall
many more martyrs shed their blood? (vol II page 283)
M E S S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG)
- I have promised you peace, My children, if you will go forth
with your Rosary in one hand and the Brown Scapular about your
neck. How many have cast aside their armor because they fear or
they are afraid of the mockery of those who have already hardened
their hearts to the truth. And their eyes and hearts are eternally
blinded, for many of them shall fall into hell, and many of them
shall be wearing their red birettas. ................My child
and my children, you must do your utmost to bring back into My
House, My Church upon earth, the Faith. I often cried through
My Mother's tears, Her tears and Mine abounded over the earth,
because through the Eternal Father, man was given a conscience
and a free will, to either accept Heaven by sacrifice and penance,
and having to face the rebuke of a darkened world. ..........No
man shall fall into hell unless he wishes it. For his heart and
his eyes are blinded; his heart is hardened, and the pleasures
of the world, and the popularity of a generation that has gone
insane with sin, for these he will give up his eternal soul.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG)
- One day there will be a great General Judgment, and all mankind
then will be forced to accept what he has sown. Many are throwing
away the time allotted to them to right the wrong, to restore
My Son's Church to its former glory, to bring your children out
of the darkness and into the light. ..........Do not be affrighted,
My child. It is best that you bring forth what is to be. Perhaps,
with your prayers and your penance's, you can reach some of these
souls in darkness before their time runs out.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG)
- My child, I know you are in wonderment of why Michael is holding
the chalice with anxiety. I must tell you within the chalice in
Michael's hands are the Hosts collected from throughout the world
that had been discarded by the faithless. I have asked that My
Son's Body be protected upon earth. But many clergy now have cast
aside My warnings from Heaven, and His Body has been placed and
thrown on the floors, and into the water fonts of many of My Son's
Churches throughout the world.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG)
- I say families must be strong in this age of sorrow, this age
of darkness. It is the family, within the family, that the children
must be taught. Do not depend upon your schools, for they have
been infiltrated with evil. Do not depend upon your neighbors,
for they are often caught up in the world of satan.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG)
- My child and My children, prayer has not become a way of life
for many. That is why communism has got such a foothold in your
country and in other countries of the world. The prayers given
to you in your childhood will be remembered always, I know, My
children; but there are those who have not received these prayers
in their schools, for prayer has been outlawed in many areas of
your country and the world. It took but a few without faith to
bring down the flag, for even your country's flag is being defiled,
My children. I speak both of the United States and Canada, for
when the great Tribulation falls upon them, they will have to
hold each other up; for they cannot escape through the waters
to get help. They will not escape through the skies, but the number
of dead will be counted in the millions.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG)
- My child and My children, I have a most desperate message for
you tonight, one which will affect most of the world. But I say
now, as your Mother of light, that there is a great darkness upon
the world. And as this has been allowed to continue, regardless
of all the messages from Heaven through various seers throughout
the world from the beginning of time, you constantly ignored Our
counsel to you, and now the fruits of your evil ways have come
to pass. Already you have been found wanting of all the graces
necessary to prevent what I am to tell you will happen now in
the near future. ..........My child, as I told you this morning,
there will be a great earthquake in the area of New York. When
I give you the dates, you will not venture from the island, or
you, too, will be caught up in the chaos. There will be much flooding
of the highways, so do not try to make your way forth into the
areas. Your son, in his work, My child, shall escape the carnage.
There will be great fear in the hearts of men, but it will be
too late to do anything about this, for the Eternal Father has
waited many years.
My parents of the world, I say unto
you, as your God: This will not be tolerated much longer. For
if you parents will not raise your children in the light, you
will raise them in darkness, and they will eventually rise up
and even kill you. There are many satanic institutions throughout
the world now that are waiting for your children. Are you going
to allow them to fall into their hands because you are too busy
elsewhere to watch your children? Are you turning them over to
the satanic tube, the television? Yes, My children, they are learning
to kill by the television. They are learning disrespect for the
parents. They laugh at you when you are not watching. That, My
children of the world-parents, your children are to be lost.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG)
- As I counseled you all in the past, I said to you as quote:
"This is a ruse," I repeat again. This is the visit
to your country, the once great and illustrious United States
of the world, the nation, the United States of America, the illustrious
country that now is leading into a path of darkness. This has
been allowed because of the dire straits of your nation. The morality
has now been cast aside. Darkness has fallen upon mankind.
DARKNESS (3 DAYS)
V O L U M E I
MARCH 24, 1971
- It surely rains teardrops from Heaven! Remember, My children,
I am your Mother! I carry the Light! Tonight a star has fallen
from the sky! Two more will fall before the Great Darkness! Fatima
....1917 America ...1971. (vol I page 25)
MARCH 18, 1973
- There will come over the earth a great darkness. The air; stagnant,
lacking oxygen. There will be no light; the candles will be few.
Then the heat will become intense. (vol I page 85)
MARCH 25, 1973
- The great plague and darkness will come before the Ball of Redemption.
(vol I page 91)
JUNE 8, 1973
- The world before the Great Chastisement will be plunged into
darkness. (vol I page 106)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973
- Your future is now the decision for man's extinction, his destruction,
lies now with man. The Father watches; He waits as you approach
great days of darkness. (vol I page 129)
JUNE 12, 1976
- There will be tremendously high waves roaring and taking with
them cities; buildings shall disappear from their moorings. The
atmosphere shall spew forth currents of great heat. A darkness
of spirit and a darkness of atmosphere shall settle in a deadly
quiet upon mankind. ..............Keep blessed candles, water,
blankets, food within your homes. The candles of those who have
remained in the state of grace shall not be extinguished, but
the candles in the homes of those who have given themselves to
satan shall not burn! Amen I say to you: As night follows day,
a great darkness shall descend upon mankind.(vol I page 502)
JUNE 12, 1976
- There will be tremendously high waves roaring and taking with
them cities; buildings shall disappear from their moorings. The
atmosphere shall spew forth currents of great heat. A darkness
of spirit and a darkness of atmosphere shall settle to a deadly
quiet upon mankind. (vol I page 502)
JUNE 18, 1976
- You who call upon the Spirit forcefully command the spirit of
darkness, the prince of darkness, to send his agents into you.
You are treading where angels would fear to go, My children. You
cannot force the Spirit to come to you. It is a gift given at
the discretion of the Eternal Father. Stop now your meandering
into regions of darkness. (vol I page 504)
MAY 13, 1978
- My children, you must understand that man in his human frailties
often succumbed to the mores of modernism. Countless times in
the past the Spirit of Truth came with the knowledge to man that
the day would come when a great delusion shall descend upon mankind
and cover the earth in a blanket of spiritual darkness. This day
has arrived, My children. Recognize the forces of evil about you
now. The man of sin, 666, satan, Lucifer, with all the demons
loosed from hell, now are upon earth and do great battle with
the children of God. (vol II page 145)
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG)
- My child and My children, especially My child Veronica, I knew
of your suffering, and I knew that you would not turn your back
on My pleas to come to the grounds this evening. I will not tax
you, My child, with too long a Message for the world this evening.
But most of all, I come to say, My children, that your time has
been shortened. The cataclysm, the day of sorrow, and the dark,
long days are coming upon you.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG)
- Veronica: I see a....I see a - it's a huge ball. It's covering
the whole sky; it's going into the trees too. It's huge, it's
smothering! And there's fire, too, there's fire all around it.
It is huge! As far as I can see, it's a whole mountain, like,
falling on us - a rock, with fire. Oh! Oh, no!...............Now
it's becoming dark. The darkness is covering the horrible sky.
it was all afire. It was huge!
DATES
V O L U M E I
DECEMBER 31, 1970
- I place this truth with you, My child. I cannot see beyond 1971.
No, My child, I do not close My eyes to what lies ahead, or try
to at this time pinpoint any dates, for all is in the Will of
the Father. But I must admonish you again that I do not use My
words lightly!! (vol I page 20)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971
- Remember January 21, 1971! This was the day My children, when
the man of perdition came to your city and entered your Holy Church.
Now he moves about and will spread destruction throughout your
Land before he proceeds on to Egypt. Remember this date, My children,
for it was a sad day for mankind. For what could be sadder than
the entrance of the anti-Christ into your Land. (vol I page 24)
MARCH 24, 1972
- Oh, My children, if only you could look into the few days in
earthly years and see what is to come upon you! You will prepare
yourself well for this day! You ask for dates, My child. It would
be then, that they come to Us in fear. Dates will not be necessary.
Should I inform you of the date or the season, the Plan of the
Father, would this be a permanent return of souls to Us? No, My
child, it would be that when the danger is over to their physical
bodies, they would go back to their sin! And We, who suffer in
Heaven will gain no advantage to have to struggle through for
the salvation of your souls on earth! (vol I page 44,45)
DECEMBER 31, 1972
- The date will not be necessary, I have given you enough clues,
signs, I have given you your directions for the future. (vol I
page 76)
MARCH 25, 1973
- I do not have to give you the count of hours, days, or years
before the coming Chastisement. What matters is that you prepare
your souls now for what lies ahead of you. (vol I page 90)
AUGUST 14, 1973
- No dates will be given, but I can assure you, My children, a
date has been set. (vol I page 122)
DECEMBER 24, 1973
- My child, many ask you for dates, for times. It is not important.
It is not necessary that you know dates, but to be prepared. (vol
I page 151)
APRIL 13, 1974
- There have been upon earth many voices heard in Heaven, voices
of speculation. Dates are not necessary, My child, what need is
there for dates but that you be prepared at all times? Were I
to give you a date mankind would turn and mend their ways, but
of what actual value would this be to the soul of mankind? For
when the danger to his human nature is over, he will return to
his sinful ways. No, My child, I shall not give dates. I shall
tell you to be prepared at all times. This assurance I will give
to My children of the light: They will not be caught unprepared,
for I have promised to be with you through the battle ahead. (vol
I page 190)
AUGUST 5, 1974
- No date will be given for there is no advantage in divulging
dates. The renewal of mankind must be a complete and lasting renewal.
Therefore, you will continue in the directions given by the Father.
I have come as a Mediatrix through the will of the Father to direct
you as a Mother. As a Mother I implore to listen to Me now and
follow this direction for if you do, you will be saved. If you
cast aside My words, the directions from Heaven, you will be lost.
(vol I page 239)
AUGUST 14, 1974
- How many warnings will you receive before the Hand of your Father
will be sent upon you? No dates do I give unto all mankind but
only to a few. All those who accept the grace given freely for
the asking will not be caught unawares. They will prepare themselves!
All mankind upon earth should prepare for his death. (vol I page
243)
OCTOBER 6, 1974
- It will not be necessary, My child, to speculate on dates for
what does it gain Us if We give you a date and man changes his
ways for the moment? For when the time of trial has passed over,
he will return then to his sinful ways. The change must be a permanent
one, My child. (vol I page 279)
DECEMBER 31, 1974
- It is not well to waste this time in speculating on dates. No
date will be necessary to be given to you. However, you have been
given the knowledge in secret and it will remain as such. (vol
I page 320)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975
- Much must remain hidden from you at this time, My child. You
will read the photographs most carefully. I have counseled you
into the past not to speculate upon the date. It will not be necessary
to speculate for I assure you, My child, when the word is to be
made known, there will be no doubt. I ask you to continue to prepare
yourselves for the days ahead. (vol I page 328)
JULY 15, 1975
- Michael: I do not have to repeat myself in admonishing you,
my child, not to speculate on dates, as you were directed by the
Queen of Heaven. It matters not, a date, but what does matter,
my child, is that a permanent change to goodness is undertaken
by mankind. (vol I page 383)
AUGUST 5, 1975
- You will not, My child, speculate in dates. It does not matter
a date, but to be prepared for I have given you enough signs and
direction to prepare yourselves for what lies ahead. (vol I page
393)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976
- Man has progressed fast onto a road that is taking him farther
away from the truth and farther into the darkness of spirit. He
is creating, in his searching, a new church, a new world, a world
that is shutting out the light. The knowledge of his God is being
taken from among him and being substituted by all manner of humanistic
modes with modernizing improvising, experimentation. And what
is behind all this, but a quest for change. And why does man change,
My children? Dissatisfaction, guidance by satan, the spirit of
darkness entering into the hearts of mankind. (vol I page 531)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976
- My child, you speculate much about the coming Warning. I have
asked you many times not to speculate on dates, but I give you
one indication that the time is ripe. When you see, when you hear,
when you feel the revolution in Rome, when you see the Holy Father
fleeing, seeking a refuge in another land, know that the time
is ripe. But beg and plead that your good Pontiff does not leave
Rome, for he will allow the man of dark secrets to capture his
throne. (vol I page 533)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976
- I will not encourage you to speculate on dates; it is not necessary.
I do not expect the sheep to come running for a short respite
from the evil and their sins; it must be a permanent turning away
from the evil, My children. Therefore, there will be no dates
given, for what would there be to gain if you know the date and
you come and change so that you will be ready, where your heart
does not carry a true conversion? (vol I page 559)
V O L U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1978
- I cannot at this time give you, My child, dates it would be
of no merit to give the date now that you ask, My child. That
will be given to you in secret. Let others speculate, but I say
unto you, you must be prepared at all times, for it will come
upon your suddenly. (vol II page 118)
MARCH 25, 1978
- My child, you persistently seek the knowledge that the Father
wished you to wait upon. No dates shall be given to mankind for
reason, My child. You must exercise great care that My words are
not misinterpreted. Satan and his armies are seeking to confuse
and confound the children of light. That is why My Mother counsels
you to keep a constant vigilance of prayer in your personal lives
and also in the lives you lead not as human beings upon earth.
(vol II page 136)
JUNE 18, 1978
- I do not at this time have to go through a long discourse with
you, My children, giving you names and dates; I am certain that
with the grace from Heaven you have received the knowledge from
other sources. (vol II page 167)
JULY 14, 1978
- There is little time left. Dates are not given, for what will
a date produce but a temporary reversal from sin, and as soon
as the danger passes, man will soon forget and go back onto the
road to perdition. Man never learns from history or his past.
(vol II page 231)
JUNE 18, 1979
- My child and My children, do not waste valuable time speculating
on dates or the methods of the Eternal Father, but be prepared
at all times, for the first great trial is coming upon you and
it will come when you least expect it. Do not become prideful
in this knowledge, My children, for those who are given much,
for much is expected of them. It truly rains teardrops from Heaven.
(vol II page 228)
JUNE 18, 1981
- You cannot count time, My child and My children, for your earth-time
is not akin to the counting of time in Heaven. So do not speculate
on dates, but be prepared for it will come upon you fast, without
any knowledge to many. Do not be caught unawares. (vol II page
292)
M E S S A G E S
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG)
- My child and My children, I wish now that there be taken three
photographs; I say three, because within these photographs, My
child, you, and you alone, will find the date of the Third World
War. Sit back, My child, now; awaken, and take three pictures.
You understand what I said to you, My child. ..........If I told
you, My children, now, in clear sound when your end is coming,
you would hasten forth, running here and there, to and fro, trying
to warn mankind. However, only a few will be saved. I say this,
My child and My children, as you count the millions of souls upon
earth, only a few will be saved.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG)
- In the Book of love and life, My children, every name has been
counted, and every name has a date. Yes, My child and My children,
the Eternal Father has looked far into the future, and the book
is already made up; those who are to be saved, the sheep; those
who are to be lost, the goats.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG)
- I cannot, My child, give you your request of last week of the
date. But you will keep those photographs that I gave you, and
you will know the date. But you must promise Me that you will
not reveal this either by mouth or by writing................You
see, My child, if you give dates, others will run to come back
to the fold, but as soon as the danger passes they will go back
to their old ways. We must have a complete redemption, not just
a temporary state of goodness. For it is a selfish reason that
does not reach out and give to the Eternal Father what He asks;
your love, your compassion, and your willingness to help Him in
this crisis.
DEACONS
MAY 23, 1979
- I am much concerned over your search for change in My Church.
In the Book of Life, the Bible, the full knowledge is given to
you of the construction of My Church. Why are you now planning
to take married men, making them what you call deacons, to give
the sanctity and holiness, the grace in marriage to My sheep?
What right have you to change the rules and the direction? ........................Understand
well when I appointed the Apostles, there were no names given
as cardinals or bishops; but Peter was the first Pope, the leader,
and would you say not that the Apostles were the first bishops?
And after that they chose out of multitudes, seven whom you call
deacons and listed as deacons, but they were truly priests at
that time. But you do not need the procedure now, if you are willing
to ask the Eternal Father, and if you do not give yourselves over
to doctrines of demons, you will have priests sufficient to carry
out the ministry. But what do you do now? You will seek to make
instant priests, against the Will of the Eternal Father! You will
delude others to think that your deacons can take the Sacraments
and give them as in the priesthood! A priest, My children, is
a chosen man of God; a true legally-ordained priest is far superior
than any man, as he represents Me in the Godhead. (vol II page
215)
DEATH
V O L U M E I
JUNE 18, 1970
- Do not disrespect Our Vicar! He is NOT the cause of the discord
of the disorder! Many of His trusted have fallen! Desecrate not
the physical presence of My Son on earth! (The Host, the Tabernacle)
Oh, thoughtless, careless child, how long can I hold back His
hand? Pray, My children, Pray! Remove all souls from Purgatory!
Physical death is but the beginning of the spiritual life, the
eternal life! I am the Mother of the world! Come to Me for I will
comfort you. (vol I page 8)
AUGUST 5, 1970
- There will be much suffering ahead, My children, but fear not
for this is your temporary home. Fear not the destruction of the
body, but pray that this destruction does not reach your soul.
So many are blinded by worldly pleasures to the realization of
the truth that lies ahead - the darkness. (vol I page 12)
AUGUST 21, 1970
- Pray, pray, My children. Recover all souls from Purgatory. Physical
death is but the beginning of spiritual life. I am the Mother
of the world, come to Me and I will comfort you. (vol I page 13)
DECEMBER 31, 1970
- The Rosary must be continued at this moment for many lives are
being lost without grace. Without having the grace, these people
are now at this moment dying, and We will see in the papers the
evidence of such. ..............Because of the revelry and sin
this evening, many lives will be lost! You will count them in
your morning papers. Continue your Rosaries for those who are
already dying and not in the state of grace, due to the mixture
of drugs and drinks. The deaths will be counted so numerous! (vol
I age 20)
APRIL 10, 1971
- My child, this is what you will suffer to gather the 144,000
true souls. My child, how well you will carry My Son's Cross!,
for many will pass on the same road My Son did before this life
as your know it, will pass away. You must remember, My children,
that the most bountiful harvest is gained when We start pulling
out the weeds, for when the stalks are bent, for they failed to
weather the storm, the soil blows away and new seed must be planted.
How hardened the hearts of so many! Oh, poor, unseeing man, that
would rather see many die so that they can be rescued from their
doubts! Who would see others die to be proven true in their judgment,
pride! Pride, befits the ultimate fall! Could you not sacrifice
your own destructive pride and search in those satan dens on this
earth, to save your fellow man, your brothers and sisters! (vol
I page 26)
APRIL 1, 1972
- A country that loses its morality has placed one foot already
in hell! Servitude, desecration, all will reap what has been sown.
Floods, great heat; you will have visited upon you a plague! Recognize
now, the finger of death will be placed upon your earth. When
you pass through this crisis many will be cleansed! Understand,
My children, that science cannot strive above the laws of His
God. (vol I page 49)
JUNE 8, 1972
- Hope will be nourished if you accept the guidance of My Son.
Satan has set before you many enticements. They have been placed
to nourish your worldly instinct for body pampering. Recognize
the truth; the spirit is a distinct enclosure within your worldly
body. The shackles, the fetters must fall to dust, but you must
live on! You see in your world the word death. My children, there
is no death. Your life will continue. The life hereafter will
be eternity and forever. Satan has sought to remove the reality
of hell from among you. You can sin when you think there is no
punishment. (vol I page 54)
APRIL 6, 1974
- O, the anguish of heart, O, the gnashing of teeth at that moment
when they pass beyond the veil! What does it gain you, now, if
you receive the whole world and lose your soul? Over the veil,
your life is eternal. Death, My child, is a word that should be
stricken from your earthly language. There is no death! Life is
eternal. Your body will one day rise anew, and you will be recognizable
to each other; but unto that time, you are living, beyond the
veil. There is no death. It is only the enemies of the Father,
that try to erase this truth from your minds. In this manner,
they can set you on the road to satan. For they are truly the
sons of satan, as they were always the sons of satan, when they
killed My Son too upon earth. (vol I page 184,185)
JUNE 8, 1974
- Make it known, My child, to the world, there is no death to
the soul. The human body will be temporarily separated from the
soul. At the end of time, both will be reunited for the glorification
of the Father. The soul lives on forever. (vol I page 210)
AUGUST 5, 1974
- No man shall be above the Creator for all men will eventually
return to the dust. The soul is eternal, life continues; the word
'death' should be removed as such, from your books. There is no
death. Your body is but a casing, a temple for you holy spirit.
When you desecrate this temple, you desecrate your spirit. You
blacken this holy edifice of the Father and as such without redemption,
you must be given to satan. (vol I page 238)
MARCH 22, 1975